Selected quad for the lemma: lord_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
lord_n aaron_n authority_n time_n 24 3 2.9645 3 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A26759 The utter routing of the whole army of all the Independents and Sectaries, with the totall overthrow of their hierarchy ..., or, Independency not Gods ordinance in which all the frontires of the Presbytery ... are defended ... / by John Bastvvick, captain in the Presbyterian army. Bastwick, John, 1593-1654. 1646 (1646) Wing B1072; ESTC R10739 685,011 796

There are 31 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

manner_n these_o man_n argue_v except_o say_v they_o the_o presbyter_n by_o the_o imposition_n of_o their_o hand_n upon_o their_o disciple_n can_v enable_v they_o on_o a_o sudden_a to_o speak_v with_o strange_a tongue_n to_o foretell_v thing_n to_o come_v and_o heal_v the_o sick_a etc._n etc._n we_o will_v not_o acknowledge_v they_o to_o be_v true_a elder_n but_o let_v they_o do_v all_o these_o thing_n by_o the_o imposition_n of_o their_o hand_n and_o then_o we_o will_v acknowledge_v they_o for_o a_o true_a presbytery_n see_v the_o vanity_n of_o these_o man_n and_o the_o instability_n of_o their_o faith_n by_o their_o own_o confession_n miracle_n will_v make_v they_o believe_v any_o thing_n if_o we_o may_v credit_v their_o own_o word_n though_o never_o so_o contrary_a to_o their_o judgement_n and_o to_o the_o faith_n once_o deliver_v to_o the_o saint_n it_o be_v well_o know_v to_o the_o learned_a that_o the_o apostle_n and_o those_o primitive_a christian_n have_v extraordinary_a and_o wonderful_a gift_n that_o ravish_v the_o world_n then_o into_o admiration_n and_o it_o be_v confess_v also_o by_o all_o understand_a christian_n that_o those_o wonder-working_a miracle_n be_v but_o temporary_a as_o the_o miraculous_a feed_n of_o the_o people_n with_o manna_n in_o the_o wilderness_n where_o they_o be_v fellow-commoner_n with_o the_o angel_n and_o continue_v but_o till_o they_o come_v into_o the_o land_n that_o flow_v with_o milk_n and_o honey_n so_o those_o miracle_n of_o the_o primitive_a christian_n continue_v but_o for_o a_o time_n till_o the_o gospel_n and_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n and_o doctrine_n be_v confirm_v and_o establish_v which_o be_v once_o do_v and_o the_o holy_a scripture_n which_o be_v to_o be_v the_o rule_n of_o faith_n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n be_v leave_v to_o posterity_n and_o to_o which_o we_o be_v tie_v and_o command_v not_o to_o be_v wise_a above_o that_o which_o be_v write_v 1_o cor._n 4._o 6._o and_o forbid_v in_o gal._n 1._o 8_o 9_o to_o believe_v otherwise_o then_o we_o have_v be_v teach_v though_o the_o apostle_n or_o a_o angel_n from_o heaven_n shall_v teach_v otherwise_o after_o i_o say_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n and_o religion_n be_v confirm_v the_o ordinary_a work_n of_o miracle_n cease_v and_o it_o be_v say_v of_o antichrist_n in_o 2_o thess_n chap._n 2._o that_o he_o shall_v come_v with_o strong_a delusion_n and_o lie_a wonder_n and_o with_o all_o deceiveableness_n in_o they_o that_o perish_v because_o they_o receive_v not_o the_o love_n of_o the_o truth_n that_o they_o may_v be_v save_v so_o that_o i_o can_v sufficient_o wonder_v to_o see_v the_o deal_n of_o these_o man_n who_o in_o these_o day_n expect_v and_o look_v for_o miracle_n to_o confirm_v their_o faith_n when_o notwithstanding_o we_o be_v forwarn_v to_o take_v heed_n of_o all_o false_a delusion_n and_o command_v to_o the_o contrary_n show_v we_o some_o miracle_n say_v they_o and_o then_o we_o will_v believe_v you_o be_v true_a presbyter_n so_o deal_v the_o jew_n with_o christ_n what_o sign_n show_v thou_o that_o we_o may_v believe_v in_o thou_o but_o when_o christ_n have_v show_v they_o sign_n upon_o sign_n and_o miracle_n upon_o miracle_n be_v they_o ever_o the_o more_o convince_v do_v those_o miracle_n create_v belief_n in_o they_o no_o sure_o but_o rather_o harden_v they_o and_o make_v they_o blaspheme_v when_o he_o cast_v out_o devil_n they_o say_v he_o do_v it_o by_o the_o prince_n of_o devil_n so_o without_o doubt_n if_o the_o presbyter_n have_v those_o gift_n of_o miracle_n that_o they_o can_v gratify_v these_o man_n with_o daily_a prodigy_n and_o work_n of_o wonder_n they_o will_v then_o say_v they_o come_v with_o lie_v wonder_n and_o with_o the_o work_n of_o satan_n and_o they_o will_v make_v the_o world_n abhor_v they_o the_o more_o there_o be_v a_o old_a say_n that_o he_o must_v rise_v early_o and_o never_o go_v to_o bed_n that_o will_v please_v all_o man_n and_o true_o it_o will_v be_v not_o only_o difficult_a but_o a_o impossible_a thing_n for_o any_o state_n or_o great_a council_n be_v it_o never_o so_o wise_a to_o please_v all_o the_o people_n under_o they_o god_n himself_o nor_o moses_n nor_o aaron_n his_o servant_n can_v please_v the_o israelite_n though_o they_o see_v never_o such_o wonder_n continual_o before_o their_o eye_n to_o confirm_v their_o authority_n yea_o they_o tell_v moses_n and_o aaron_n to_o their_o face_n that_o they_o take_v too_o much_o upon_o they_o and_o afterward_o they_o cast_v off_o god_n own_o government_n &_o god_n himself_o as_o the_o lord_n complain_v to_o samuel_n in_o 1_o samuel_n and_o will_v set_v up_o a_o government_n after_o the_o model_n of_o their_o own_o brain_n as_o it_o be_v at_o large_a set_v down_o in_o that_o book_n and_o not_o long_o after_o they_o change_v the_o manner_n of_o god_n worship_n in_o jeroboam_n time_n and_o teach_v the_o fear_n of_o god_n as_o the_o lord_n complain_v isay_n 29._o after_o the_o precept_n of_o man_n and_o reject_v god_n commandment_n as_o christ_n say_v matth._n 15._o and_o mark_v 7._o so_o that_o what_o they_o think_v best_a in_o their_o own_o eye_n that_o be_v ever_o best_o please_v unto_o they_o they_o will_v not_o content_v themselves_o with_o the_o write_a word_n though_o they_o be_v never_o so_o often_o by_o moses_n and_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o prophet_n command_v to_o cleave_v unto_o it_o say_v to_o the_o law_n and_o to_o the_o testimony_n isay_n 8._o even_o so_o it_o be_v now_o in_o these_o day_n they_o content_v not_o themselves_o with_o that_o ordinance_n that_o be_v set_v down_o in_o the_o write_a word_n but_o say_v come_v show_v we_o some_o miracle_n and_o then_o we_o will_v believe_v you_o be_v a_o right_a presbytery_n our_o saviour_n speak_v to_o the_o jew_n concern_v saint_n john_n the_o baptist_n and_o himself_o john_n say_v he_o come_v neither_o eat_n nor_o drink_v and_o you_o say_v behold_v he_o have_v a_o devil_n the_o son_n of_o man_n come_v both_o eat_n and_o drink_v and_o you_o say_v he_o be_v a_o wine-bibber_n a_o friend_n of_o publican_n and_o sinner_n so_o that_o whatsoever_o method_n or_o way_n god_n use_v to_o convert_v they_o they_o cavile_v against_o it_o and_o be_v never_o satisfy_v always_o resist_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n as_o stephen_n tell_v they_o in_o act._n 7._o so_o now_o in_o these_o our_o time_n they_o look_v for_o miracle_n and_o a_o new_a way_n of_o teach_v but_o all_o good_a christian_n be_v forbid_v to_o listen_v after_o or_o to_o give_v heed_n to_o miracle_n and_o be_v send_v unto_o moses_n and_o the_o prophet_n luke_n 16._o and_o be_v command_v to_o search_v the_o scripture_n john_n 5._o yea_o our_o saviour_n himself_o in_o the_o person_n of_o abraham_n luke_n 16._o say_v that_o if_o man_n will_v not_o believe_v moses_n and_o the_o prophet_n they_o will_v not_o be_v persuade_v by_o miracle_n and_o i_o be_o confident_a that_o can_v the_o presbyter_n do_v all_o those_o miracle_n these_o man_n desire_v they_o will_v the_o more_o reproach_n they_o and_o exclaim_v against_o they_o and_o affirm_v they_o wrought_v by_o the_o devil_n as_o the_o jew_n tell_v our_o saviour_n he_o do_v i_o must_v confess_v i_o be_o of_o a_o contrary_a opinion_n to_o these_o man_n not_o only_o in_o the_o matter_n of_o miracle_n but_o in_o all_o external_a performance_n for_o i_o be_o instruct_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n that_o the_o devil_n can_v transform_v himself_o into_o a_o angel_n of_o light_n and_o that_o the_o deceiver_n and_o false_a teacher_n shall_v come_v forth_o in_o sheep_n clothing_n and_o for_o outward_a appearance_n shalequalize_v if_o not_o exceed_v the_o faithful_a &_o true_a pastor_n and_o minister_n of_o christ_n and_o therefore_o we_o be_v in_o special_a command_v to_o take_v heed_n of_o such_o and_o for_o my_o particular_a if_o any_o man_n whatsoever_o of_o never_o such_o seem_a sanctity_n sufficient_a ability_n unblameable_a life_n shall_v come_v forth_o and_o teach_v any_o other_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n manner_n or_o government_n then_o that_o i_o have_v be_v teach_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o shall_v confirm_v this_o their_o doctrine_n with_o never_o so_o many_o miracle_n i_o will_v still_o continue_v steadfast_a in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o cleave_v unto_o the_o write_a word_n and_o will_v never_o believe_v contrary_a to_o that_o though_o i_o shall_v undergo_v the_o great_a misery_n or_o be_v expose_v to_o the_o great_a want_n by_o it_o that_o any_o man_n ever_o see_v for_o i_o know_v that_o all_o these_o momentary_a trial_n and_o affliction_n be_v not_o worthy_a that_o exceed_a weight_n of_o glory_n that_o shall_v be_v reveal_v and_o for_o this_o very_a point_n of_o the_o presbytery_n in_o that_o sense_n i_o take_v
put_v to_o silence_v the_o ignorance_n of_o foolish_a man_n the_o old_a puritan_n of_o england_n have_v full_o learn_v this_o lesson_n of_o obedience_n to_o all_o authority_n both_o civil_a and_o ecclesiastical_a be_v command_v to_o obey_v they_o that_o have_v the_o rule_n over_o they_o and_o to_o submit_v themselves_o unto_o they_o as_o who_o watch_v over_o their_o soul_n as_o those_o that_o be_v to_o give_v account_n etc._n etc._n hebr._n 13._o 17._o and_o this_o doctrine_n they_o do_v inculcate_v incessant_o unto_o the_o people_n and_o for_o the_o government_n ecclesiastical_a the_o old_a puritan_n of_o england_n do_v believe_v it_o be_v that_o presbyterian_a government_n that_o be_v now_o contend_v for_o by_o all_o the_o presbyterian_o as_o be_v to_o be_v see_v at_o large_a in_o the_o learned_a work_n of_o that_o ever_o to_o be_v honour_v master_n cartwright_n in_o his_o disputation_n against_o bishop_n whitgift_n who_o for_o his_o zeal_n to_o that_o government_n be_v call_v the_o father_n of_o all_o the_o puritan_n they_o also_o do_v believe_v that_o all_o government_n both_o ecclesiastical_a and_o civil_a be_v radical_o original_o and_o inherent_o in_o god_n and_o christ_n and_o from_o they_o derive_v to_o the_o king_n prince_n noble_n and_o judge_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o to_o all_o the_o true_a minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n in_o his_o church_n who_o all_o have_v their_o authority_n immediate_o from_o god_n and_o by_o who_o alone_o according_a to_o the_o holy_a scripture_n they_o rule_v and_o command_v they_o never_o dare_v be_v so_o blasphemous_a as_o to_o rob_v god_n of_o his_o honour_n and_o glory_n and_o the_o king_n nobles_z and_o judge_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n of_o their_o several_a power_n say_v that_o king_n and_o noble_n and_o the_o ruler_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o minister_n in_o christ_n church_n and_o kingdom_n be_v the_o creature_n of_o the_o people_n and_o that_o the_o people_n be_v the_o sovereign_a lord_n both_o of_o king_n nobles_z parliament_n and_o minister_n and_o that_o the_o authority_n which_o they_o exercise_v be_v inherent_o in_o the_o people_n and_o that_o they_o may_v give_v it_o and_o deposit_v it_o into_o who_o hand_n they_o please_v and_o where_o they_o lust_v and_o call_v any_o of_o their_o ruler_n and_o governor_n to_o a_o account_n and_o appoint_v they_o their_o time_n and_o season_n when_o they_o shall_v meet_v and_o tell_v they_o what_o they_o shall_v do_v and_o displace_v they_o at_o pleasure_n as_o they_o shall_v think_v fit_a all_o these_o lesson_n of_o blasphemy_n the_o old_a puritan_n of_o england_n be_v ignorant_a of_o which_o learned_a nescience_n of_o they_o be_v commendable_a they_o have_v be_v better_o teach_v from_o all_o the_o holy_a prophet_n and_o bless_a apostle_n who_o both_o by_o precept_n and_o example_n have_v instruct_v the_o people_n of_o god_n in_o all_o age_n to_o yield_v obedience_n to_o those_o that_o be_v governor_n over_o they_o as_o we_o may_v read_v through_o all_o the_o holy_a scripture_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n where_o we_o find_v what_o reverence_n even_o father_n abraham_n the_o father_n of_o the_o faithful_a show_v unto_o all_o king_n under_o who_o government_n he_o live_v in_o the_o time_n of_o his_o peregrination_n and_o where_o we_o read_v also_o what_o reverence_n joseph_n yield_v unto_o pharaoh_n and_o how_o jacob_n his_o father_n demean_v himself_o with_o all_o the_o patriarch_n to_o pharaoh_n and_o those_o that_o be_v over_o they_o in_o authority_n and_o how_o jeremiah_n behave_v himself_o to_o the_o king_n in_o his_o time_n and_o how_o the_o three_o child_n and_o daniel_n carry_v themselves_o to_o the_o very_a king_n of_o babylon_n though_o heathen_a prince_n never_o speak_v unto_o they_o nor_o come_v before_o they_o but_o with_o all_o reverence_n deprecate_v all_o evil_a from_o they_o upon_o all_o occasion_n &_o pray_v for_o their_o welfare_n yea_o christ_n example_n ought_v to_o be_v for_o our_o imitation_n who_o open_v not_o his_o mouth_n the_o same_o we_o find_v in_o all_o the_o apostle_n whensoever_o they_o be_v bring_v before_o authority_n with_o what_o sweetness_n of_o language_n they_o carry_v themselves_o towards_o they_o and_o what_o reverend_a expression_n they_o use_v to_o all_o in_o authority_n though_o never_o so_o wicked_a when_o they_o be_v bring_v before_o they_o yea_o if_o they_o have_v fail_v but_o in_o the_o least_o expression_n how_o soon_o they_o will_v recall_v themselves_o for_o when_o ananias_n command_v they_o that_o stand_v by_o paul_n to_o smite_v he_o on_o the_o mouth_n act._n 23._o and_o he_o in_o passion_n behold_v his_o injustice_n say_v god_n shall_v smite_v thou_o thou_o paint_a wall_n when_o it_o be_v reply_v unto_o he_o revile_a thou_o god_n high_a priest_n paul_n stand_v not_o upon_o the_o justification_n of_o his_o word_n but_o meek_o answer_v i_o wist_v not_o brethren_n that_o it_o be_v the_o high_a priest_n for_o it_o be_v write_v say_v he_o exod._n 22._o 27._o thou_o shall_v not_o speak_v evil_a of_o the_o ruler_n of_o the_o people_n paul_n have_v learn_v his_o lesson_n well_o and_o soon_o recollect_v himself_o acknowledge_v his_o error_n that_o he_o have_v deviate_v from_o the_o rule_n which_o be_v there_o record_v for_o all_o man_n imitation_n in_o after_o time_n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n to_o square_v their_o life_n and_o obedience_n by_o they_o be_v not_o by_o that_o to_o speak_v evil_a of_o the_o ruler_n of_o the_o people_n whether_o he_o be_v ecclesiastical_a or_o civil_a and_o if_o they_o may_v not_o speak_v evil_a than_o they_o may_v not_o resist_v their_o authority_n and_o unihilate_v their_o power_n which_o be_v the_o extremity_n of_o evil_a and_o rebellion_n yea_o all_o man_n be_v forbid_v so_o much_o as_o in_o their_o bedchamber_n to_o curse_v or_o think_v evil_a of_o those_o in_o authority_n how_o much_o more_o be_v those_o then_o blame_v worthy_a that_o not_o only_o think_v evil_a but_o speak_v evil_a yea_o write_v and_o publish_v evil_a against_o king_n nobles_z and_o judge_n of_o all_o sort_n both_o civil_a and_o ecclesiastical_a and_o divest_v they_o all_o of_o their_o authority_n speak_v evil_a of_o dignity_n and_o assume_v the_o sovereignty_n of_o they_o all_o to_o themselves_o &_o that_o from_o god_n him●elfe_n call_v themselves_o the_o sovereign_a lord_n of_o they_o all_o give_v they_o law_n to_o rule_v by_o and_o deny_v they_o their_o due_a reverence_n in_o the_o face_n of_o the_o kingdom_n as_o late_o some_o of_o the_o independent_o and_o sectary_n have_v do_v both_o to_o the_o house_n of_o lord_n and_o commons_o sure_o such_o man_n damnation_n sleep_v not_o whatsoever_o they_o pretend_v and_o how_o high_o soever_o they_o carry_v themselves_o and_o by_o who_o soever_o in_o these_o their_o evil_a do_n they_o be_v support_v back_v and_o second_v for_o saint_n peter_n in_o his_o second_o epistle_n that_o know_v very_o well_o the_o mind_n of_o god_n concern_v such_o man_n in_o the_o second_o chapter_n say_v this_o of_o all_o the_o wicked_a verse_n 9_o 10_o 11_o 12._o etc._n etc._n the_o lord_n know_v how_o to_o deliver_v the_o godly_a out_o of_o temptation_n and_o to_o reserve_v the_o unjust_a unto_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n to_o be_v punish_v but_o chief_o they_o that_o walk_v after_o the_o flesh_n and_o despise_v dominion_n and_o government_n who_o he_o call_v presumptuous_a self-willed_n that_o be_v not_o afraid_a to_o speak_v evil_a of_o dignity_n which_o the_o very_a angel_n say_v he_o though_o they_o be_v great_a in_o power_n and_o might_n will_v not_o do_v against_o the_o devil_n be_v in_o authority_n though_o it_o be_v usurp_v but_o those_o as_o natural_a brute_n beast_n make_v to_o be_v take_v and_o destroy_v speak_v evil_a of_o thing_n they_o understand_v not_o and_o shall_v utter_o perish_v in_o their_o own_o corruption_n and_o shall_v receive_v the_o reward_n of_o unrighteousness_n here_o be_v a_o fearful_a doom_n pronounce_v against_o all_o such_o people_n as_o speak_v evil_a of_o dignity_n and_o saint_n jude_n likewise_o in_o his_o epistle_n second_o saint_n peter_n verse_n 8_o 9_o 10_o etc._n etc._n call_v such_o man_n as_o despise_v authority_n and_o speak_v evil_a of_o dignity_n filthy_a dreamer_n and_o compare_v they_o to_o brute_n beast_n and_o unto_o cain_n and_o unto_o balaam_n and_o unto_o corah_n dathan_n and_o abiram_n pronounce_v woe_n unto_o they_o all_o and_o proclaim_v they_o spot_n and_o deformity_n in_o all_o company_n and_o society_n call_v they_o moreover_o cloud_n without_o water_n creature_n empty_a of_o all_o goodness_n tree_n who_o fruit_n wither_v yea_o without_o fruit_n twice_o dead_a here_o in_o this_o world_n in_o their_o sin_n and_o trespass_n and_o eternal_o in_o the_o world_n to_o come_v and_o as_o if_o he_o can_v never_o have_v speak_v enough_o of_o such_o man_n as_o
despise_v dominion_n and_o speak_v evil_a of_o dignity_n he_o call_v they_o rage_a wave_n of_o the_o sea_n foam_v out_o their_o own_o shame_n wander_v star_n to_o who_o be_v reserve_v the_o blackness_n of_o darkness_n for_o ever_o against_o who_o he_o say_v the_o lord_n will_v execute_v judgement_n for_o all_o their_o ungodly_a deed_n and_o for_o all_o their_o hard_a speech_n still_v they_o murmurer_n complayner_n who_o mouth_n speak_v great_a swell_a word_n have_v man_n person_n in_o admiration_n because_o of_o advantage_n desire_v all_o man_n to_o remember_v the_o word_n of_o the_o holy_a apostle_n and_o of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n who_o foretold_v the_o people_n of_o god_n that_o there_o shall_v be_v such_o mocker_n in_o the_o last_o time_n who_o shall_v walk_v after_o their_o ungodly_a lust_n and_o that_o they_o may_v the_o better_o take_v notice_n of_o they_o and_o know_v who_o these_o man_n both_o christ_n and_o the_o apostle_n speak_v of_o he_o say_v they_o be_v such_o as_o shall_v separate_v themselves_o sensual_a not_o have_v the_o spirit_n he_o describe_v they_o to_o be_v a_o unsanctified_a race_n of_o man_n whatsoever_o seem_v holiness_n they_o make_v a_o show_n of_o and_o such_o as_o ought_v to_o be_v avoid_v and_o shun_v of_o all_o such_o as_o desire_v to_o please_v god_n and_o avoid_v that_o condemnation_n that_o be_v denounce_v against_o all_o such_o as_o despise_a dignity_n and_o resist_a authority_n and_o even_o as_o the_o lord_n by_o his_o servant_n command_v the_o people_n to_o separate_v from_o the_o company_n of_o corah_n dathan_n and_o abiram_n and_o to_o go_v from_o their_o tent_n lest_o they_o be_v involve_v in_o the_o same_o misery_n and_o calamity_n that_o be_v come_v upon_o they_o for_o their_o rebellion_n against_o moses_n so_o ought_v all_o the_o people_n that_o indeed_o do_v true_o fear_v god_n decline_v the_o company_n and_o society_n of_o all_o such_o as_o now_o oppose_v authority_n and_o make_v themselves_o the_o sovereign_a lord_n of_o the_o king_n and_o ruler_n and_o judge_n that_o god_n have_v appoint_v over_o they_o for_o sure_o a_o great_a unrighteousness_n can_v be_v perpetrate_v against_o god_n then_o thus_o supercilious_o to_o trample_v upon_o authority_n and_o to_o despise_v those_o that_o be_v over_o they_o which_o be_v the_o daily_a practice_n of_o the_o independent_o and_o sectary_n all_o which_o unrighteousness_n the_o old_a puritan_n of_o england_n be_v not_o guilty_a of_o have_v be_v better_a teach_v and_o therefore_o in_o this_o part_n of_o duty_n the_o independent_o be_v different_a from_o the_o old_a puritan_n of_o england_n who_o walk_v not_o in_o this_o way_n of_o unrighteousness_n and_o therefore_o the_o sactary_n have_v not_o outstripped_n they_o in_o this_o point_n of_o obedience_n to_o authority_n but_o they_o be_v indeed_o overgrow_v and_o be_v become_v monstrous_a in_o their_o rebellious_a practice_n yea_o so_o far_o they_o be_v from_o reverence_v those_o in_o authority_n as_o they_o be_v grow_v to_o that_o height_n of_o pride_n and_o unrighteousness_n as_o many_o of_o they_o will_v not_o so_o much_o as_o pray_v for_o the_o very_a parliament_n or_o the_o assembly_n either_o private_o or_o public_o as_o can_v sufficient_o be_v prove_v by_o such_o as_o be_v acquaint_v with_o they_o and_o their_o practice_n for_o not_o long_o since_o in_o a_o great_a assembly_n and_o congregation_n of_o independent_o one_o of_o their_o predicant_o be_v in_o prayer_n after_o he_o have_v put_v up_o many_o petition_n and_o request_n in_o behalf_n of_o their_o fraternity_n thus_o express_v himself_o speak_v unto_o god_n now_o lord_n say_v he_o we_o shall_v come_v to_o pray_v for_o the_o parliament_n and_o assembly_n but_o they_o be_v not_o worthy_a the_o prayer_n of_o the_o saint_n and_o so_o with_o disdain_n he_o pass_v they_o by_o as_o unworthy_a of_o their_o prayer_n than_o the_o which_o what_o can_v be_v speak_v more_o wicked_o and_o contrary_a to_o the_o practice_n of_o all_o the_o old_a puritan_n of_o england_n who_o in_o all_o their_o prayer_n and_o supplication_n private_a and_o public_a ever_o with_o tear_n pray_v for_o all_o in_o authority_n i_o affirm_v that_o this_o practice_n of_o the_o independent_o be_v not_o only_o one_o of_o the_o high_a strain_n of_o all_o unrighteousness_n and_o contrary_a to_o the_o practice_n of_o all_o the_o old_a puritan_n of_o england_n but_o contrary_a to_o all_o the_o practice_n of_o all_o the_o saint_n that_o ever_o yet_o live_v in_o the_o world_n and_o contrary_a to_o all_o the_o command_n of_o god_n both_o in_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n for_o we_o have_v read_v how_o earnest_o moses_n pray_v for_o the_o rebellious_a israelite_n wish_v himself_o rather_o to_o be_v blot_v out_o of_o the_o book_n of_o life_n then_o that_o the_o lord_n shall_v destroy_v they_o and_o so_o do_v paul_n wish_v for_o his_o countryman_n the_o jew_n samuel_n also_o when_o the_o people_n desire_v he_o to_o pray_v for_o they_o 1_o sam._n 12._o v._n 23._o god_n forbid_v say_v he_o that_o i_o shall_v sin_v against_o the_o lord_n in_o cease_v to_o pray_v for_o you_o etc._n etc._n so_o that_o the_o holy_a prophet_n make_v it_o a_o sin_n in_o either_o minister_n or_o people_n not_o to_o pray_v for_o their_o brethren_n and_o especial_o those_o in_o authority_n for_o this_o be_v the_o practice_n of_o all_o the_o prophet_n the_o lord_n tell_v a_o heathen_a king_n that_o abraham_n his_o servant_n shall_v pray_v for_o he_o yea_o father_n abraham_n pray_v for_o the_o very_a sodomite_n and_o the_o kingdom_n in_o which_o they_o dwell_v gen._n 18._o and_o the_o people_n of_o israel_n when_o they_o be_v in_o captivity_n in_o babylon_n have_v a_o command_n from_o god_n himself_o to_o pray_v for_o the_o welfare_n of_o very_a babylon_n and_o the_o prince_n of_o the_o same_o and_o we_o have_v read_v what_o supplication_n daniel_n ezra_n and_o nehemiah_n put_v up_o in_o behalf_n of_o those_o heathen_a prince_n under_o which_o they_o live_v as_o well_o as_o for_o their_o own_o countryman_n and_o saint_n paul_n give_v it_o in_o charge_n to_o all_o minister_n and_o people_n 1_o tim._n 2._o to_o pray_v for_o all_o man_n ver_fw-la 1_o 2._o i_o exhort_v say_v he_o that_o first_o of_o all_o supplication_n prayer_n and_o intercession_n and_o give_v of_o thanks_o be_v make_v for_o all_o man_n for_o king_n and_o all_o that_o be_v in_o authority_n that_o we_o may_v lead_v a_o peaceable_a and_o quiet_a life_n in_o all_o godliness_n and_o honesty_n for_o this_o be_v good_a and_o acceptable_a in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n our_o saviour_n so_o that_o here_o there_o be_v not_o only_o a_o exhortation_n to_o all_o christian_n in_o general_a but_o in_o special_a to_o minister_n to_o pray_v for_o all_o man_n but_o primary_o for_o those_o in_o authority_n and_o reason_n &_o ground_n be_v also_o give_v by_o the_o apostle_n of_o encouragement_n to_o this_o duty_n viz._n because_o that_o it_o be_v a_o good_a and_o acceptable_a thing_n in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n tend_v also_o for_o the_o peace_n quiet_a and_o tranquillity_n of_o they_o all_o and_o which_o be_v more_o to_o all_o godliness_n which_o be_v the_o glory_n of_o all_o peace_n and_o therefore_o that_o they_o ought_v to_o pray_v for_o those_o in_o authority_n and_o this_o exhortation_n of_o the_o apostle_n all_o the_o old_a puritan_n of_o england_n do_v ever_o most_o diligent_o observe_v and_o follow_v pray_v for_o they_o that_o be_v in_o authority_n night_n and_o day_n whereas_o the_o sectary_n be_v never_o in_o private_a hear_v pray_v for_o either_o king_n or_o parliament_n or_o the_o scot_n or_o assembly_n how_o wicked_a a_o thing_n therefore_o be_v it_o in_o the_o independent_o and_o sectary_n and_o what_o a_o part_n of_o unrighteousness_n be_v it_o in_o they_o daily_o to_o omit_v this_o duty_n who_o will_v neither_o pray_v with_o their_o brethren_n nor_o for_o they_o but_z separate_z from_o all_o their_o society_n as_o from_o a_o people_n unholy_a yea_o how_o impious_a and_o rebellious_a a_o thing_n be_v it_o in_o they_o against_o both_o god_n and_o all_o authority_n to_o say_v and_o that_o in_o a_o disdainful_a manner_n even_o in_o their_o public_a meet_v place_n and_o congregation_n that_o neither_o the_o parliament_n nor_o assembly_n be_v worthy_a their_o prayer_n yea_o it_o be_v well_o know_v and_o can_v be_v prove_v that_o they_o pray_v against_o they_o and_o the_o king_n himself_o and_o that_o not_o only_o private_o but_o in_o their_o congregation_n public_o sure_o if_o either_o the_o parliament_n or_o assembly_n or_o the_o presbyterian_o be_v as_o bad_a as_o the_o king_n of_o babylon_n or_o the_o persecute_v jew_n yet_o they_o ought_v to_o be_v pray_v for_o for_o we_o have_v a_o command_n to_o pray_v for_o all_o man_n yea_o for_o our_o enemy_n and_o those_o that_o persecute_v we_o and_o
not_o the_o only_a saint_n nor_o the_o old_a puritan_n of_o england_n overgrow_v for_o it_o be_v notorious_a that_o all_o of_o they_o abhor_v all_o these_o their_o ungodly_a proceed_n and_o therefore_o the_o way_n of_o independency_n be_v not_o the_o way_n of_o righteousness_n but_o the_o open_a way_n of_o sin_n heresy_n and_o apparent_a rebellion_n but_o i_o will_v yet_o in_o a_o few_o thing_n more_o compare_v the_o old_a puritan_n of_o england_n and_o the_o sectary_n and_o independent_o together_o before_o i_o come_v to_o speak_v of_o the_o prayer_n of_o that_o homothumadon_n brother_n i_o first_o make_v mention_n of_o it_o be_v well_o know_v that_o the_o old_a puritan_n of_o england_n be_v all_o of_o they_o very_o zealous_a for_o the_o sanctify_a of_o the_o lord_n day_n and_o their_o whole_a employment_n on_o that_o day_n sufficient_o declare_v to_o all_o those_o that_o be_v familiar_o acquaint_v with_o they_o that_o they_o be_v heavenly_a mind_a man_n and_o such_o as_o be_v true_o mortify_v and_o dead_a unto_o the_o world_n who_o deny_v unto_o themselves_o usual_o those_o ordinary_a necessary_n on_o that_o day_n that_o at_o other_o time_n they_o will_v more_o free_o partake_v in_o they_o dress_v but_o little_a meat_n on_o that_o day_n no_o more_o then_o very_a necessity_n call_v for_o not_o out_o of_o any_o penuriousnesse_n but_o for_o this_o end_n that_o their_o servant_n may_v be_v ease_v from_o all_o toil_a work_n that_o they_o may_v the_o better_o attend_v upon_o the_o duty_n of_o the_o day_n and_o they_o be_v especial_o careful_a that_o both_o they_o and_o their_o child_n with_o the_o stranger_n that_o be_v within_o their_o gate_n shall_v sanctify_v that_o day_n they_o leave_v none_o of_o they_o to_o ramble_v whether_o they_o please_v they_o have_v well_o learned_a that_o lesson_n that_o they_o and_o their_o man-servant_n and_o maidservant_n with_o the_o stranger_n within_o their_o wall_n shall_v keep_v holy_a the_o sabbath_n day_n and_o do_v both_o by_o themselves_o and_o with_o their_o family_n take_v order_n that_o no_o duty_n of_o the_o day_n shall_v be_v omit_v the_o whole_a day_n be_v take_v up_o either_o in_o prayer_n or_o meditation_n or_o read_v of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n or_o hear_v the_o word_n or_o repeat_v of_o sermon_n or_o sing_v of_o psalm_n or_o instruct_v and_o catechise_v their_o family_n or_o in_o the_o work_n of_o charity_n or_o visit_v the_o sick_a or_o in_o holy_a conference_n or_o in_o read_v godly_a book_n or_o in_o perform_v of_o some_o duty_n or_o other_o that_o may_v bring_v glory_n to_o god_n and_o honour_n to_o their_o holy_a profession_n and_o their_o house_n be_v general_o so_o well_o order_v and_o all_o thing_n carry_v in_o such_o comeliness_n and_o decency_n as_o he_o that_o have_v be_v bring_v up_o in_o profane_a company_n and_o have_v accidental_o light_v into_o own_o of_o their_o house_n will_v as_o much_o have_v wonder_v to_o see_v the_o excellent_a carriage_n of_o all_o thing_n there_o as_o the_o queen_n of_o sheba_n do_v to_o behold_v the_o order_n of_o solomon_n house_n i_o may_v true_o speak_v this_o to_o their_o immortal_a praise_n that_o i_o never_o see_v in_o their_o family_n the_o least_o disorder_n on_o those_o day_n nor_o never_o see_v a_o feast_n on_o that_o day_n though_o at_o other_o time_n they_o be_v very_o free_a in_o their_o entertainment_n and_o much_o give_v to_o hospitality_n and_o niggardly_a in_o nothing_o and_o common_o they_o cause_v their_o tablecloth_n to_o be_v spread_v on_o the_o saturday_n before_o they_o go_v to_o bed_n and_o they_o be_v careful_a that_o all_o that_o be_v well_o in_o the_o family_n shall_v go_v to_o church_n with_o they_o and_o they_o have_v a_o singular_a care_n that_o all_o their_o servant_n may_v have_v no_o hindrance_n or_o impediment_n by_o any_o worldly_a employment_n that_o may_v in_o the_o least_o disturb_v they_o or_o dictract_v they_o from_o the_o duty_n of_o the_o day_n all_o these_o thing_n i_o can_v witness_v with_o thousand_o more_o beside_o myself_o be_v the_o practice_n of_o the_o old_a puritan_n of_o england_n and_o this_o be_v the_o way_n of_o righteousness_n that_o they_o walk_v in_o for_o the_o sanctify_a of_o the_o lord_n day_n now_o if_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o independent_o and_o sectary_n about_o this_o business_n and_o point_n of_o obedience_n be_v look_v into_o there_o will_v be_v find_v a_o vast_a difference_n between_o they_o and_o the_o old_a puritan_n of_o england_n for_o it_o be_v well_o know_v that_o they_o ordinary_o make_v all_o their_o great_a entertainment_n on_o that_o day_n as_o that_o i_o speak_v of_o before_o for_o instance_n and_o many_o more_o that_o i_o can_v mention_v where_o the_o whole_a church_n be_v feast_v to_o no_o small_a distraction_n to_o their_o poor_a and_o godly_a servant_n that_o be_v take_v up_o with_o more_o attendance_n that_o day_n than_o martha_n be_v on_o a_o ordinary_a day_n in_o entertain_v of_o christ_n himself_o which_o not_o withstand_v he_o then_o blame_v in_o very_o godly_a and_o believe_a martha_n who_o have_v learned_a to_o give_v christ_n a_o honourable_a confession_n of_o her_o faith_n concern_v her_o belief_n in_o he_o and_o doubtless_o if_o martha_n be_v then_o blame_v by_o christ_n and_o have_v from_o he_o a_o reproof_n for_o she_o too_o much_o care_n about_o many_o thing_n in_o entertain_v himself_o i_o beleevee_a the_o independent_o and_o sectary_n will_v receive_v but_o little_a thanks_n at_o his_o hand_n for_o profane_v his_o own_o day_n and_o cause_v other_o to_o do_v the_o same_o and_o for_o their_o thus_o break_v and_o violate_v his_o holy_a law_n and_o hinder_v of_o his_o servant_n by_o their_o needless_a entertainment_n from_o the_o duty_n of_o piety_n and_o holiness_n that_o he_o require_v at_o their_o hand_n on_o those_o day_n and_o he_o will_v say_v to_o they_o at_o the_o last_o judgement_n as_o for_o these_o their_o disorderly_a walking_n so_o for_o their_o new_a and_o needless_a tradition_n who_o require_v these_o thing_n at_o your_o hand_n nay_o do_v i_o not_o forbid_v these_o thing_n will_v the_o lord_n say_v true_o it_o be_v most_o notorious_a that_o the_o sectary_n and_o independent_o be_v very_o loose_a in_o the_o sanctify_a of_o the_o lord_n day_n and_o although_o many_o of_o they_o before_o they_o fall_v into_o the_o way_n of_o independency_n be_v very_o conscionable_a observer_n of_o that_o day_n and_o be_v great_o displease_v with_o the_o king_n for_o grant_v but_o a_o toleration_n for_o sport_n on_o that_o day_n and_o can_v then_o say_v that_o very_a sin_n alone_o have_v be_v enough_o to_o bring_v down_o the_o judgement_n of_o god_n upon_o the_o whole_a land_n yet_o since_o they_o turn_v sectary_n they_o can_v now_o not_o only_o feast_v and_o riot_n on_o that_o day_n but_o if_o need_v be_v work_n on_o the_o same_o in_o their_o ordinary_a employment_n as_o can_v be_v prove_v and_o many_o of_o they_o that_o be_v then_o great_a zealot_n for_o the_o performance_n of_o all_o duty_n of_o holiness_n that_o day_n with_o all_o their_o family_n now_o regard_v not_o that_o day_n no_o more_o than_o a_o other_o nay_o they_o let_v their_o servant_n and_o child_n go_v whether_o they_o please_v leave_v they_o all_o to_o the_o liberty_n as_o they_o speak_v of_o their_o own_o conscience_n and_o it_o be_v ordinary_o observe_v that_o all_o the_o independent_o and_o sectary_n in_o the_o army_n and_o through_o the_o whole_a kingdom_n will_v frequent_o journey_n on_o that_o day_n and_o for_o the_o homothumadon_n predicant_o they_o be_v trundle_v about_o on_o the_o lord_n day_n in_o their_o coach_n with_o four_o horse_n needlesse_o disquiet_v both_o man_n and_o beast_n that_o they_o have_v a_o command_n to_o give_v rest_n unto_o a_o tumbril_n or_o a_o dung-cart_n be_v fit_a for_o these_o proud_a and_o profane_a fellow_n to_o be_v carry_v about_o in_o and_o if_o they_o will_v not_o leave_v these_o their_o licentious_a course_n and_o surcease_v thus_o to_o profane_v the_o lord_n day_n i_o see_v no_o reason_n but_o that_o the_o magistrate_n shall_v take_v some_o order_n with_o they_o and_o punish_v they_o for_o profane_v it_o it_o be_v not_o only_o against_o the_o law_n of_o god_n but_o contrary_a unto_o the_o law_n of_o the_o land_n it_o may_v be_v that_o be_v one_o of_o the_o law_n that_o the_o sectary_n will_v have_v abrogate_a and_o make_v null_n for_o most_o certain_a it_o be_v their_o practice_n be_v both_o contrary_a to_o that_o law_n and_o the_o know_a law_n of_o god_n and_o the_o practice_n of_o all_o the_o old_a puritan_n of_o england_n and_o therefore_o the_o way_n of_o independency_n in_o this_o point_n also_o be_v not_o the_o way_n of_o righteousness_n but_o of_o profaneness_n and_o licentiousness_n neither_o be_v they_o overgrow_v puritan_n in_o this_o but_o
that_o i_o have_v not_o know_v any_o presbyterian_a now_o live_v that_o be_v former_o familiar_o acquaint_v with_o any_o that_o afterward_o turn_v sectary_n or_o independent_a notwithstanding_o whatsoever_o courtesy_n they_o have_v former_o receive_v from_o they_o that_o have_v not_o either_o betray_v he_o or_o do_v he_o some_o ill_a office_n afterward_o or_o at_o least_o will_v never_o do_v he_o the_o least_o kindness_n though_o he_o be_v in_o need_n or_o show_v he_o any_o favour_n so_o that_o in_o this_o point_n of_o love_n and_o charity_n they_o walk_v not_o in_o the_o way_n of_o the_o old_a puritan_n who_o be_v kind_a to_o all_o man_n and_o sincere_a towards_o those_o they_o have_v familiar_o converse_v with_o it_o never_o be_v know_v that_o they_o betray_v any_o of_o they_o or_o do_v they_o any_o ill_a office_n and_o therefore_o in_o this_o point_n also_o the_o way_n of_o independency_n be_v not_o the_o way_n of_o righteousness_n nor_o the_o way_n of_o the_o old_a puritan_n of_o england_n but_o the_o way_n of_o treachery_n unthankfulness_n and_o unrighteousness_n but_o to_o instance_n the_o practice_n and_o way_n of_o the_o old_a puritan_n in_o a_o few_o thing_n more_o and_o then_o to_o compare_v they_o with_o the_o way_n of_o the_o independent_o and_o sectary_n the_o old_a puritan_n of_o england_n as_o all_o can_v witness_v that_o know_v they_o be_v all_o of_o they_o general_o man_n not_o way_n addict_v to_o the_o pleasure_n of_o the_o world_n and_o in_o their_o apparel_n and_o outward_a garb_n common_o they_o be_v ever_o out_o of_o fashion_n it_o be_v to_o my_o knowledge_n count_v a_o great_a sin_n among_o they_o to_o exceed_v in_o apparel_n or_o to_o be_v fashionable_o clad_v or_o to_o go_v with_o long_a hair_n or_o rufsian_n like_o or_o to_o be_v see_v in_o gorgeous_a attire_n you_o shall_v rare_o or_o seldom_o behold_v any_o gold_n or_o silver_n lace_n on_o any_o of_o their_o apparel_n except_o they_o have_v be_v of_o noble_a parentage_n or_o of_o some_o very_a great_a and_o rich_a family_n or_o in_o some_o eminent_a place_n of_o authority_n and_o that_o be_v always_o very_o spare_v and_o for_o cuff_n at_o their_o hand_n not_o one_o of_o a_o thousand_o of_o the_o old_a puritan_n be_v ever_o see_v in_o any_o and_o if_o they_o at_o any_o time_n upon_o any_o festivity_n or_o at_o any_o solemn_a entertainment_n or_o upon_o such_o like_a occasion_n appear_v in_o any_o they_o be_v common_o such_o little_a suck_v once_o as_o a_o man_n can_v scarce_o discern_v they_o now_o if_o you_o look_v upon_o all_o the_o independent_o general_o through_o town_n and_o country_n though_o they_o be_v never_o bear_v to_o any_o estate_n nor_o be_v of_o any_o repute_n till_o that_o out_o of_o the_o ruin_n of_o the_o kingdom_n by_o their_o sectarisme_n and_o indirect_a deal_n they_o have_v attain_v to_o some_o wealth_n you_o shall_v find_v they_o the_o only_a gallant_n of_o the_o world_n so_o that_o one_o that_o shall_v meet_v they_o will_v take_v they_o for_o roarer_n and_o ruffian_n rather_o than_o saint_n yea_o you_o shall_v find_v they_o with_o cuff_n and_o those_o great_a one_o at_o their_o very_a heel_n and_o with_o more_o silver_n and_o gold_n upon_o their_o clothes_n and_o at_o their_o heel_n for_o those_o upstart_n must_v now_o be_v in_o their_o silver_n spur_n than_o many_o great_a and_o honourable_a personage_n have_v in_o their_o purse_n so_o that_o those_o that_o behold_v they_o if_o they_o know_v they_o not_o will_v take_v they_o to_o be_v the_o gentry_n and_o peer_n of_o the_o kingdom_n rather_o than_o a_o company_n of_o obscure_a fellow_n in_o so_o much_o that_o some_o take_a notice_n of_o the_o great_a change_n in_o this_o kingdom_n say_v not_o long_o since_o that_o gentleman_n and_o nobleman_n be_v become_v beggar_n and_o beggar_n be_v become_v lord_n and_o gentleman_n true_o the_o like_a pride_n in_o apparel_n be_v never_o see_v among_o such_o as_o make_v profession_n of_o religion_n before_o these_o our_o time_n whereas_o the_o old_a puritan_n of_o england_n both_o man_n and_o woman_n be_v all_o modest_o clad_v and_o attire_v and_o go_v very_o plain_a and_o think_v it_o rather_o a_o scandal_n to_o religion_n to_o be_v attire_v or_o clad_v in_o the_o least_o manner_n after_o the_o fashion_n of_o the_o court_n then_o for_o a_o honour_n to_o their_o profession_n and_o i_o have_v know_v they_o blame_v those_o that_o abhor_v all_o pride_n as_o much_o as_o any_o man_n do_v and_o only_o for_o that_o they_o go_v handsome_o clad_v and_o apparel_v although_o it_o be_v only_o for_o the_o grace_v of_o their_o profession_n as_o they_o then_o tell_v they_o for_o the_o which_o they_o be_v at_o that_o time_n sufferer_n so_o that_o if_o those_o people_n be_v now_o alive_a those_o old_a puritan_n and_o shall_v see_v our_o sectary_n and_o independent_o who_o predicate_v themselves_o to_o be_v the_o only_a saint_n those_o good_a old_a puritan_n will_v lift_v up_o their_o hand_n with_o admiration_n and_o say_v as_o one_o of_o new_a england_n say_v not_o long_o since_o see_v a_o brother_n of_o his_o come_n over_o thither_o very_o gallant_a who_o he_o have_v know_v live_v in_o a_o mean_a condition_n that_o in_o behold_v he_o he_o think_v he_o see_v one_o of_o the_o seven_o wonder_n of_o the_o world_n and_o profess_v that_o he_o believe_v they_o will_v ere_o long_o grow_v mad_a with_o pride_n in_o old_a england_n say_v moreover_o that_o in_o his_o time_n he_o have_v then_o be_v but_o ten_o year_n in_o new_a england_n he_o that_o shall_v have_v be_v see_v go_v in_o those_o fashion_n the_o sectary_n and_o independent_o usual_o and_o daily_o now_o go_v in_o will_v have_v be_v think_v to_o have_v have_v little_a religion_n in_o he_o and_o he_o exceed_o marvel_v at_o the_o liberty_n all_o those_o of_o the_o congregationall_a way_n now_o take_v say_v that_o he_o much_o suspect_v their_o sincerity_n that_o now_o make_v that_o a_o virtue_n and_o count_v that_o a_o honour_n to_o religion_n which_o the_o old_a puritan_n of_o england_n deem_v a_o dishonour_n to_o god_n and_o a_o disgrace_n and_o dishonour_n to_o their_o holy_a profession_n so_o that_o in_o this_o point_n also_o the_o practice_n and_o way_n of_o the_o sectary_n be_v not_o the_o way_n of_o the_o old_a puritan_n of_o england_n and_o the_o way_n of_o righteousness_n it_o be_v the_o way_n of_o vanity_n and_o the_o world_n and_o contrary_a unto_o the_o command_n of_o the_o apostle_n saint_n paul_n rom._n 12._o ver_fw-la 2_o 3_o 4._o again_o whereas_o the_o old_a puritan_n of_o england_n have_v their_o fare_n diet_n and_o household_n stuff_n how_o rich_a in_o estate_n soever_o they_o be_v according_a to_o their_o several_a degree_n be_v it_o a_o yeoman_n or_o but_o a_o ordinary_a gentleman_n or_o a_o knight_n they_o ever_o observe_v their_o rank_n whatsoever_o i_o say_v or_o how_o great_a soever_o the_o estate_n of_o each_o of_o they_o be_v the_o yeoman_n have_v his_o house_n furnish_v and_o fare_v like_o a_o yeoman_n and_o not_o like_o a_o gentleman_n the_o gentleman_n he_o also_o fare_v like_o a_o gentleman_n and_o have_v his_o house_n furnish_v according_o and_o not_o like_o a_o knight_n the_o knight_n in_o like_a manner_n fare_v like_o a_o knight_n and_o have_v his_o house_n furnish_v according_a to_o his_o rank_n and_o not_o like_o a_o lord_n all_o the_o old_a puritan_n of_o england_n every_o one_o of_o they_o out_o of_o conscience_n observe_v and_o keep_v their_o rank_n and_o live_v and_o fare_v according_a to_o that_o degree_n and_o order_n god_n have_v place_v they_o in_o this_o world_n and_o use_v their_o superfluity_n for_o the_o clothing_n of_o the_o naked_a and_o feed_v of_o the_o necessitate_a and_o relieve_v of_o the_o poor_a many_o of_o the_o which_o rich_a yeoman_n gentleman_n and_o knight_n i_o can_v name_v some_o of_o the_o which_o to_o my_o knowledge_n lay_v by_o yearly_a out_o of_o their_o estate_n and_o revenue_n some_o two_o hundred_o pound_n some_o three_o hundred_o yea_o some_o five_o hundred_o pound_n all_o their_o life_n time_n which_o they_o send_v to_o the_o godly_a minister_n here_o and_o there_o disperse_v through_o the_o kingdom_n to_o be_v distribute_v among_o the_o poor_a and_o necessitate_a christian_n in_o those_o part_n and_o this_o be_v the_o practice_n of_o the_o old_a rich_a puritan_n of_o england_n yea_o many_o of_o they_o maintain_v a_o preach_a orthodox_n minister_n in_o some_o blind_a corner_n of_o the_o kingdom_n at_o their_o own_o charge_n other_o of_o they_o always_o entertain_v one_o silence_v minister_n or_o other_o or_o take_v poor_a necessitate_v christian_n child_n into_o their_o family_n and_o breed_v they_o as_o their_o own_o i_o can_v speak_v much_o to_o the_o praise_n of_o god_n and_o to_o many_o of_o their_o immortal_a honour_n upon_o my_o
presbyterian_a brethren_n and_o of_o that_o great_a familiarity_n they_o have_v with_o christ_n and_o what_o transcendent_a knowledge_n they_o have_v receive_v from_o the_o mind_n and_o bosom_n of_o the_o father_n it_o will_v not_o be_v amiss_o here_o to_o recite_v some_o passage_n of_o that_o seraphical_a doctor_n sermon_n he_o preach_v in_o the_o army_n i_o will_v take_v they_o out_o of_o the_o book_n call_v the_o vindication_n of_o certain_a citizen_n where_o page_n 9_o they_o set_v down_o certain_a point_n of_o doctrine_n that_o saint_n dell_n teach_v in_o the_o army_n in_o their_o hear_n viz._n 1._o that_o there_o be_v no_o more_o of_o a_o church_n of_o god_n in_o a_o kingdom_n than_o there_o be_v such_o as_o have_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n in_o that_o kingdom_n 2._o neither_o old_a nor_o new_a testament_n do_v hold_v forth_o a_o whole_a nation_n to_o be_v a_o church_n 3._o whatsoever_o a_o state_n a_o assembly_n or_o council_n shall_v say_v ought_v not_o to_o bind_v the_o saint_n further_o than_o the_o judgement_n of_o those_o saint_n shall_v lead_v they_o 4._o the_o saint_n be_v those_o that_o be_v now_o style_v anabaptist_n familist_n antinomian_o independent_o sectary_n and_o the_o like_a 5._o the_o power_n be_v in_o you_o the_o people_n keep_v it_o part_v not_o with_o it_o 6._o the_o first_o party_n that_o arise_v against_o you_o namely_o the_o profane_a one_o of_o the_o land_n be_v already_o fall_v under_o you_o and_o now_o there_o be_v a_o other_o party_n formalist_n and_o carnal_a gospeler_n rise_v up_o against_o you_o but_o i_o be_o confident_a they_o shall_v all_o fall_v under_o you_o 7._o they_o be_v willing_a to_o become_v subject_n to_o make_v the_o saint_n slave_n nay_o they_o be_v all_o willing_a to_o become_v slave_n themselves_o that_o they_o may_v tread_v upon_o the_o neck_n of_o the_o saint_n these_o point_n of_o sublimate_v doctrine_n i_o find_v set_v forth_o public_o and_o publish_v by_o authority_n as_o deliver_v by_o saint_n dell_n in_o one_o of_o his_o sermon_n at_o the_o army_n which_o i_o have_v not_o put_v in_o to_o this_o my_o epistle_n to_o the_o reader_n have_v i_o not_o some_o day_n after_o the_o publication_n of_o they_o inquire_v whether_o saint_n dell_n have_v answer_v to_o this_o accusation_n against_o he_o and_o understanding_n that_o he_o have_v reply_v nothing_o to_o it_o which_o he_o may_v have_v do_v in_o two_o hour_n if_o he_o have_v be_v innocent_a and_o not_o guilty_a i_o take_v it_o pro_fw-la confesso_fw-la know_v that_o the_o press_n be_v open_a for_o all_o man_n just_a apology_n and_o defence_n especial_o when_o i_o find_v they_o open_v to_o all_o wicked_a and_o impious_a pamphlet_n and_o this_o as_o not_o all_o that_o make_v i_o believe_v the_o charge_n be_v true_a against_o he_o but_o because_o i_o have_v hear_v and_o that_o from_o man_n of_o reputation_n and_o worthy_a of_o belief_n that_o it_o be_v ordinary_a with_o he_o and_o his_o complice_n to_o preach_v such_o doctrine_n as_o these_o be_v public_o and_o private_o and_o to_o maintain_v they_o wheresoever_o he_o come_v all_o the_o which_o i_o shall_v ever_o be_v able_a god_n assist_v i_o to_o prove_v he_o never_o have_v nor_o receive_v from_o the_o mind_n and_o bosom_n of_o god_n the_o father_n nor_o from_o jesus_n christ_n though_o he_o boast_v much_o of_o the_o familiarity_n he_o have_v with_o jesus_n christ_n if_o this_o be_v the_o knowledge_n the_o sectary_n vaunt_v so_o much_o of_o and_o if_o these_o be_v the_o thing_n they_o pretend_v they_o have_v receive_v from_o the_o mind_n and_o bosom_n of_o the_o father_n i_o must_v confess_v in_o these_o their_o notion_n they_o outstrip_v the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o saint_n of_o old_a and_o of_o all_o the_o holy_a prophet_n and_o apostle_n and_o of_o the_o old_a puritan_n of_o england_n who_o be_v ignorant_a of_o they_o all_o which_o be_v a_o learned_a ignorance_n in_o they_o know_v that_o god_n the_o father_n teach_v a_o far_o different_a doctrine_n to_o his_o people_n as_o i_o show_v a_o little_a before_o and_o shall_v more_o full_o declare_v in_o the_o ensue_a discourse_n but_o this_o i_o will_v again_o and_o again_o assert_v that_o neither_o the_o old_a puritan_n of_o england_n nor_o our_o godly_a presbyterian_o now_o be_v inferior_a to_o any_o of_o the_o sectary_n for_o a_o holy_a and_o conscionable_a outward_a walk_v in_o all_o manner_n of_o conversation_n or_o in_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n or_o of_o jesus_n christ_n or_o in_o any_o kind_n of_o knowledge_n that_o may_v true_o be_v call_v learning_n or_o science_n whatsoever_o the_o independent_o and_o sectary_n may_v glory_v and_o boast_v of_o themselves_o &_o i_o do_v far_o assert_v that_o all_o the_o godly_a presbyter_n in_o the_o church_n of_o england_n do_v preach_v jesus_n christ_n faith_n &_o repentance_n and_o free_a grace_n and_o that_o in_o every_o congregation_n upon_o all_o occasion_n more_o orthodox_o solid_o sincere_o and_o learned_o with_o all_o practical_a divinity_n than_o ever_o any_o of_o the_o sectary_n do_v or_o can_v do_v and_o therefore_o they_o do_v not_o know_v more_o of_o god_n than_o the_o presbyterian_o do_v as_o that_o homothumadon_n brother_n pharisaical_o and_o false_o glory_v and_o all_o the_o sectary_n with_o he_o vaunt_v so_o that_o i_o see_v no_o reason_n why_o we_o may_v not_o here_o make_v use_n of_o the_o apostle_n saint_n paul_n word_n concern_v this_o business_n who_o in_o the_o second_o of_o the_o cor._n 10._o v._n 7._o 12._o 18._o do_v you_o look_v on_o thing_n after_o the_o outward_a appearance_n say_v he_o if_o any_o man_n trust_v to_o himself_o that_o he_o be_v christ_n let_v he_o of_o himself_o think_v this_o again_o that_o as_o he_o be_v christ_n even_o so_o be_v we_o christ_n for_o we_o do_v not_o make_v ourselves_o of_o the_o number_n or_o compare_v ourselves_o with_o some_o that_o commend_v themselves_o but_o they_o measure_v themselves_o by_o themselves_o and_o compare_v themselves_o among_o themselves_o be_v not_o wise_a or_o understand_v not_o for_o not_o he_o that_o commend_v himself_o be_v approve_v but_o who_o the_o lord_n commend_v so_o that_o it_o seem_v by_o saint_n paul_n word_n not_o only_o in_o this_o epistle_n but_o in_o other_o that_o the_o false_a apostle_n and_o seducer_n of_o his_o time_n have_v some_o high_a esteem_n of_o themselves_o and_o of_o their_o own_o holiness_n knowledge_n and_o ability_n above_o other_o yea_o above_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o as_o the_o independent_o and_o sectary_n of_o our_o time_n have_v of_o their_o great_a piety_n and_o sufficiency_n above_o their_o brethren_n as_o all_o their_o word_n pamphlet_n and_o vindication_n daily_a witness_n in_o which_o they_o slight_v all_o that_o oppose_v their_o novelty_n and_o style_v they_o vain_a man_n and_o such_o as_o neither_o know_v what_o to_o say_v norhow_v to_o hold_v their_o peace_n vilify_a they_o all_o as_o the_o offscouring_a and_o thing_n of_o nought_o which_o practice_n of_o they_o when_o it_o be_v blame_v in_o the_o false_a apostle_n as_o sinful_a it_o can_v be_v praiseworthy_a in_o the_o sectary_n now_o in_o our_o time_n who_o walk_v in_o that_o way_n of_o unrighteousness_n those_o false_a teacher_n than_o do_v and_o contrary_a to_o that_o rule_n prescribe_v by_o god_n which_o be_v to_o prefer_v other_o before_o themselves_o in_o honour_n which_o way_n the_o old_a puritan_n of_o england_n walk_v in_o and_o not_o in_o the_o way_n of_o the_o false_a apostle_n and_o the_o sectary_n of_o our_o time_n for_o they_o keep_v the_o road_n way_n and_o the_o royal_a way_n of_o righteousness_n esteem_v of_o their_o brethren_n better_a than_o of_o themselves_o but_o the_o world_n be_v never_o without_o such_o a_o sort_n of_o man_n for_o solomon_n speak_v of_o the_o like_a there_o be_v a_o generation_n of_o man_n say_v he_o and_o how_o lofty_a be_v their_o eye_n and_o their_o eyelid_n lift_v up_o and_o of_o such_o creature_n saint_n paul_n speak_v 2_o cor._n 11_o ver_fw-la 22_o which_o make_v he_o compare_v himself_o with_o they_o after_o this_o manner_n be_v they_o hebrew_n say_v he_o so_o be_o i_o be_v they_o israelites_n so_o be_o i_o be_v they_o the_o seed_n of_o abraham_n so_o be_o i_o be_v they_o the_o minister_n of_o christ_n i_o speak_v say_v he_o as_o a_o fool_n i_o be_o more_o etc._n etc._n thus_o the_o holy_a apostle_n laugh_v at_o these_o seducer_n and_o vain_a boaster_n and_o to_o make_v they_o more_o ashamed_a he_o compare_v himself_o with_o they_o not_o fear_v to_o be_v count_v a_o jeerer_n and_o scorner_n of_o piety_n and_o religion_n though_o he_o make_v himself_o merry_a with_o they_o who_o he_o know_v very_o well_o for_o all_o the_o show_v they_o make_v of_o be_v the_o minister_n of_o righteousness_n that_o they_o be_v a_o company_n of_o impostor_n and_o therefore_o
not_o their_o design_n they_o be_v in_o a_o way_n to_o bring_v a_o great_a confusion_n upon_o both_o church_n and_o state_n and_o the_o three_o kingdom_n then_o that_o which_o be_v be_v all_o now_o imbroyl_v with_o for_o i_o have_v hear_v they_o peremptory_o conclude_v among_o themselves_o make_v use_n of_o that_o say_n of_o the_o prophet_n that_o they_o shall_v come_v to_o thou_o and_o not_o thou_o to_o they_o intimate_v by_o those_o word_n that_o they_o will_v never_o submit_v themselves_o to_o the_o presbyterian_a classical_a government_n but_o that_o all_o the_o presbyter_n must_v come_v in_o and_o yield_v to_o their_o independency_n so_o that_o if_o they_o persist_v in_o this_o their_o groundless_a resolution_n we_o may_v never_o promise_v unto_o ourselves_o any_o peace_n or_o quiet_a unless_o they_o may_v have_v what_o they_o aspire_v to_o and_o what_o they_o desire_v and_o for_o aught_o i_o know_v there_o will_v be_v no_o end_n of_o their_o demand_n nor_o no_o limit_n or_o bound_n to_o their_o request_n and_o prayer_n for_o they_o look_v every_o day_n for_o new_a discovery_n and_o expect_v yet_o more_o new_a light_n say_v that_o all_o truth_n be_v not_o yet_o full_o reveal_v and_o therefore_o according_a to_o those_o they_o say_v they_o must_v act_v and_o be_v move_v so_o that_o by_o this_o their_o doctrine_n there_o will_v never_o be_v a_o period_n of_o their_o grollery_n and_o all_o man_n may_v well_o perceive_v what_o a_o endless_a work_n they_o that_o shall_v satisfy_v the_o independent_o will_v have_v by_o their_o very_a beginning_n for_o to_o my_o knowledge_n the_o chief_a of_o they_o and_o those_o that_o be_v now_o in_o high_a esteem_n in_o that_o fraternity_n and_o the_o chief_a man_n and_o woman_n among_o they_o at_o the_o begin_n of_o this_o parliament_n desire_v only_o the_o removal_n of_o the_o ceremony_n and_o all_o innovation_n the_o removal_n of_o the_o service_n book_n the_o put_v down_o of_o the_o high_a commission_n court_n and_o the_o take_v away_o of_o the_o hierarchy_n root_n and_o branch_n and_o the_o set_n up_o of_o the_o presbyterian_a government_n as_o it_o be_v in_o other_o reform_a church_n and_o especial_o in_o that_o of_o scotland_n and_o that_o be_v all_o they_o then_o desire_v and_o there_o be_v then_o none_o in_o all_o the_o city_n of_o london_n that_o more_o honour_v the_o scot_n to_o my_o knowledge_n than_o they_o none_o that_o entertain_v they_o more_o noble_o and_o free_o which_o be_v the_o honour_n of_o our_o nation_n and_o for_o their_o own_o reputation_n none_o that_o frequent_v the_o ministry_n of_o the_o scot_n more_o and_o that_o more_o zealous_o attend_v upon_o it_o every_o lord_n day_n while_o they_o be_v lodge_v by_o london-stone_n than_o they_o so_o that_o i_o do_v not_o know_v at_o this_o time_n a_o independent_a in_o london_n especial_o of_o the_o principall_a of_o they_o that_o be_v not_o then_o great_a lover_n of_o the_o scot_n and_o very_o desirous_a of_o that_o church-government_n here_o in_o england_n that_o be_v now_o among_o they_o and_o which_o they_o have_v since_o covenant_v for_o yea_o they_o be_v the_o only_a people_n that_o bring_v in_o the_o scot_n and_o yet_o behold_v now_o the_o vanity_n and_o instability_n of_o all_o these_o man_n there_o be_v not_o any_o neither_o in_o city_n or_o country_n that_o more_o malign_v they_o and_o be_v now_o great_a enemy_n to_o they_o and_o the_o presbyterian_a government_n than_o these_o very_a independent_o which_o make_v i_o think_v that_o it_o will_v be_v as_o impossible_a a_o work_n for_o the_o parliament_n or_o any_o authority_n to_o satisfy_v they_o as_o it_o be_v impossible_a for_o the_o whole_a world_n to_o satisfy_v the_o avarice_n of_o a_o covetous_a man_n one_o story_n of_o the_o which_o come_v now_o to_o my_o mind_n which_o i_o shall_v at_o this_o time_n relate_v upon_o my_o own_o knowledge_n which_o somewhat_o suit_v with_o these_o time_n in_o which_o we_o live_v i_o be_v one_o day_n some_o twenty_o year_n since_o at_o a_o great_a festivity_n in_o a_o doctor_n of_o physics_n house_n here_o in_o london_n he_o in_o a_o merry_a way_n relate_v unto_o his_o guest_n how_o poor_a he_o come_v into_o this_o city_n profess_v unto_o they_o all_o that_o he_o be_v not_o worth_a six_o pound_n in_o the_o world_n book_n and_o all_o at_o his_o first_o come_n and_o that_o be_v entertain_v into_o the_o family_n of_o one_o of_o queen_n elizabeth_n doctor_n of_o physic_n to_o her_o person_n for_o to_o teach_v his_o child_n he_o so_o please_v the_o humour_n of_o the_o doctor_n that_o he_o let_v he_o have_v the_o use_n of_o his_o library_n and_o communicate_v unto_o he_o the_o way_n of_o his_o practice_n and_o give_v he_o many_o excellent_a receipt_n and_o he_o remain_v with_o he_o some_o five_o year_n it_o please_v god_n to_o take_v away_o the_o doctor_n and_o his_o apothecary_n take_v a_o very_a good_a like_n to_o he_o persuade_v he_o now_o to_o practice_v physic_n in_o his_o place_n wish_v he_o withal_o to_o take_v some_o convenient_a house_n by_o he_o promise_v he_o that_o he_o will_v further_o he_o what_o he_o can_v say_v moreover_o that_o he_o doubt_v not_o but_o by_o the_o praise_n and_o the_o goodreport_n he_o will_v give_v of_o he_o to_o make_v all_o those_o noble_a personage_n that_o be_v the_o doctor_n patient_n to_o make_v use_n of_o he_o and_o he_o will_v do_v all_o this_o upon_o condition_n that_o he_o will_v use_v no_o other_o apothecary_n but_o himself_o to_o which_o the_o doctor_n willing_o condescend_v whereupon_o the_o apothecary_n so_o bestir_v himself_o that_o he_o make_v good_a his_o promise_n and_o bring_v he_o into_o the_o great_a practice_n of_o any_o physician_n then_o in_o london_n but_o say_v he_o when_o i_o first_o begin_v to_o practice_n be_v very_o poor_a i_o think_v with_o myself_o that_o if_o i_o can_v with_o all_o my_o pain_n and_o industry_n get_v but_o a_o hundred_o pound_n a_o year_n to_o live_v upon_o when_o i_o be_o old_a or_o leave_v to_o my_o family_n i_o will_v never_o aspire_v to_o great_a riches_n and_o true_o say_v he_o within_o the_o space_n of_o one_o year_n i_o get_v above_o two_o thousand_o pound_n and_o purchase_v a_o hundred_o pound_n a_o year_n and_o then_o i_o think_v with_o myself_o if_o i_o can_v but_o make_v it_o up_o two_o hundred_o i_o will_v rest_v content_v without_o any_o far_a ambition_n and_o i_o within_o less_o than_o one_o year_n space_n make_v it_o up_o two_o hundred_o pound_n per_fw-la annum_fw-la and_o then_o i_o think_v if_o i_o can_v but_o make_v it_o up_o five_o hundred_o pound_n a_o year_n i_o will_v never_o desire_v any_o more_o and_o within_o a_o few_o year_n say_v he_o i_o make_v it_o up_o five_o hundred_o pound_n a_o year_n and_o then_o i_o think_v with_o myself_o if_o i_o can_v now_o but_o make_v it_o a_o thousand_o pound_n a_o year_n i_o will_v then_o be_v content_a and_o within_o a_o few_o year_n i_o have_v my_o desire_n and_o then_o i_o think_v with_o myself_o if_o i_o can_v make_v it_o up_o but_o two_o thousand_o pound_n a_o year_n i_o will_v never_o desire_v any_o more_o wealth_n and_o before_o i_o be_v fifty_o year_n of_o age_n i_o have_v say_v he_o purchase_v two_o thousand_o pound_n per_fw-la annum_fw-la and_o then_o i_o think_v with_o myself_o if_o i_o can_v make_v it_o up_o but_o three_o thousand_o pound_n per_fw-la annum_fw-la i_o will_v then_o go_v build_v hospital_n and_o rest_n abundant_o satisfy_v and_o true_o say_v he_o within_o a_o few_o year_n i_o make_v it_o up_o above_o three_o thousand_o pound_n by_o the_o year_n and_o by_o my_o troth_n say_v he_o i_o be_o now_o as_o covetous_a as_o ever_o i_o be_v this_o story_n do_v i_o hear_v that_o doctor_n tell_v in_o way_n of_o gloriation_n to_o many_o but_o it_o may_v very_o fit_o be_v apply_v to_o all_o the_o independent_o who_o be_v as_o boundless_a in_o their_o desire_n as_o this_o doctor_n be_v in_o his_o covetousness_n oh_o say_v they_o a_o few_o year_n since_o be_v but_o the_o ceremony_n remove_v with_o the_o innovation_n of_o the_o prelate_n we_o will_v be_v satisfy_v and_o when_o they_o be_v go_v if_o now_o the_o service_n book_n be_v but_o cast_v out_o of_o the_o church_n we_o will_v be_v content_a and_o when_o that_o be_v cast_v out_o now_o if_o the_o high_a commission_n court_n be_v put_v down_o we_o shall_v then_o be_v satisfy_v and_o when_o that_o be_v put_v down_o then_o if_o the_o hierarchy_n be_v also_o take_v away_o root_n and_o branch_n than_o they_o shall_v be_v satisfy_v now_o when_o that_o be_v go_v if_o we_o can_v have_v but_o the_o presbytery_n establish_v and_o that_o it_o may_v be_v with_o we_o as_o in_o the_o other_o reform_a church_n and_o especial_o that_o of_o
or_o swear_v fealty_n to_o any_o king_n who_o be_v own_v by_o the_o people_n and_o whole_a kingdom_n to_o be_v their_o lawful_a king_n as_o appoint_v and_o set_v over_o they_o of_o god_n and_o be_v open_o proclaim_v through_o the_o who_o realm_n to_o be_v their_o king_n though_o at_o that_o time_n he_o be_v in_o a_o other_o country_n and_o but_o now_o come_v to_o take_v the_o possession_n of_o his_o kingdom_n i_o say_v i_o demand_v whether_o such_o subject_n as_o take_v the_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n and_o swear_v fealty_n unto_o he_o before_o he_o come_v and_o sit_v visible_o upon_o his_o throne_n be_v not_o by_o this_o their_o oath_n become_v that_o king_n subject_n as_o true_o and_o as_o real_o as_o if_o the_o king_n be_v bodily_a present_n i_o demand_v further_o when_o he_o be_v in_o person_n come_v into_o his_o kingdom_n and_o visible_o among_o they_o salute_v and_o entertain_v and_o own_v by_o the_o people_n for_o their_o king_n whether_o or_o no_o those_o subject_n that_o then_o take_v their_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n and_o promise_v by_o that_o their_o oath_n their_o subjection_n unto_o he_o be_v not_o as_o real_o and_o true_o his_o subject_n as_o those_o that_o after_o he_o be_v inaugurate_v and_o go_v into_o one_o of_o his_o other_o kingdom_n take_v then_o the_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n and_o swear_v subjection_n unto_o he_o in_o all_o his_o just_a command_n i_o be_o confident_a that_o all_o man_n that_o be_v but_o a_o little_a skill_v in_o politic_n or_o any_o good_a learning_n will_v acknowledge_v that_o either_o of_o the_o former_a subject_n be_v as_o true_o and_o real_o subject_n unto_o he_o though_o they_o never_o see_v he_o as_o many_o hundred_o thousand_o never_o do_v their_o king_n as_o those_o that_o take_v the_o oath_n when_o he_o be_v go_v in_o triumph_n into_o a_o other_o of_o his_o kingdom_n and_o thus_o it_o be_v with_o those_o that_o be_v baptize_v by_o john_n the_o baptist_n that_o great_a officer_n of_o christ_n kingdom_n and_o the_o bless_a apostle_n those_o steward_n secretary_n privy_a counsellor_n &_o ambassador_n of_o his_o royalty_n who_o all_o baptize_v those_o that_o come_v unto_o they_o into_o jesus_n christ_n the_o king_n and_o messiah_n as_o well_o before_o his_o death_n as_o after_o and_o all_o they_o own_v he_o as_o well_o then_o for_o their_o king_n as_o after_o cry_v hosanna_n thou_o son_n of_o david_n and_o strew_v their_o garment_n in_o the_o way_n say_v bless_a be_v the_o king_n that_o come_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n peace_n in_o heaven_n and_o glory_n in_o the_o high_a luke_n 19_o vers_fw-la 4._o and_o therefore_o it_o be_v a_o senseless_a reason_n yea_o contradictory_n unto_o itself_o that_o i._o s._n bring_v consider_v there_o be_v no_o difference_n for_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o matter_n though_o there_o be_v some_o variety_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o circumstance_n of_o time_n and_o in_o this_o fond_a error_n of_o i._o s._n be_v my_o brother_n burton_n and_o the_o papist_n who_o think_v there_o be_v a_o great_a difference_n between_o the_o baptism_n before_o christ_n death_n and_o that_o after_o his_o death_n when_o indeed_o for_o substance_n there_o be_v none_o no_o more_o than_o be_v between_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n before_o christ_n death_n and_o after_o and_o therefore_o all_o those_o that_o receive_v either_o of_o those_o sacrament_n or_o both_o of_o they_o before_o his_o passion_n be_v as_o good_a christian_n as_o those_o that_o receive_v they_o after_o for_o he_o be_v own_v by_o they_o at_o that_o time_n to_o be_v the_o lamb_n of_o god_n that_o be_v to_o take_v away_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o world_n of_o believer_n and_o to_o be_v the_o king_n of_o the_o jew_n the_o saviour_n of_o his_o people_n to_o be_v the_o anoint_a christ_n &_o they_o take_v the_o sacrament_n upon_o it_o which_o be_v as_o much_o as_o the_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n to_o any_o king_n which_o be_v sufficient_a to_o make_v they_o as_o good_a christian_n as_o any_o that_o shall_v come_v after_o they_o and_o therefore_o they_o that_o be_v baptize_v by_o john_n the_o baptist_n into_o christ_n to_o die_v which_o i._o s._n do_v acknowledge_v they_o be_v all_o as_o good_a christian_n as_o any_o now_o baptize_v by_o the_o independent_o and_o therefore_o that_o he_o faith_n to_o the_o contrary_a and_o in_o opposition_n to_o this_o truth_n be_v a_o mere_a babble_n and_o a_o contradiction_n of_o himself_o and_o this_o shall_v suffice_v to_o have_v speak_v to_o his_o first_o answer_n to_o prove_v that_o those_o that_o be_v baptize_v by_o john_n the_o baptist_n be_v as_o good_a christian_n as_o any_o other_o that_o be_v baptize_v after_o christ_n death_n his_o second_o be_v as_o senseless_a which_o be_v this_o to_o say_v say_v he_o that_o the_o baptism_n of_o john_n be_v the_o same_o with_o christ_n and_o the_o apostle_n be_v flat_a contrary_n to_o the_o assertion_n of_o john_n himself_o and_o the_o apostle_n mat._n 21._o 25._o act._n 18._o 25._o i_o baptize_v you_o with_o water_n say_v he_o but_o there_o come_v one_o after_o i_o who_o shall_v baptize_v with_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o with_o fire_n these_o be_v the_o word_n of_o his_o second_o argument_n to_o prove_v that_o those_o that_o be_v baptize_v by_o john_n the_o baptist_n be_v no_o christian_n in_o the_o entrance_n of_o this_o his_o answer_n he_o beat_v the_o air_n and_o fight_v with_o his_o own_o shadow_n and_o falsify_v my_o word_n for_o i_o never_o say_v nor_o think_v it_o that_o the_o baptism_n of_o john_n be_v the_o same_o with_o christ_n for_o the_o scripture_n relate_v that_o christ_n baptize_v not_o at_o all_o john_n 4._o vers_fw-la 2._o i_o say_v indeed_o it_o be_v the_o same_o with_o the_o apostle_n and_o that_o be_v manifest_a out_o of_o many_o place_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n as_o out_o of_o the_o 3._o of_o luke_n ver_fw-la 2._o &_o john_n the_o 1._o v._o 33._o where_o john_n himself_o speak_v say_v he_o that_o send_v i_o to_o baptize_v with_o water_n the_o same_o say_v unto_o i_o etc._n etc._n yea_o one_o of_o those_o place_n quote_v by_o himself_o matth._n 21._o vers_fw-la 25._o sufficient_o declare_v that_o john_n have_v his_o commission_n from_o god_n himself_o who_o prophet_n he_o be_v to_o baptize_v with_o water_n and_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o before_o christ_n death_n and_o ascension_n baptize_v but_o with_o water_n and_o have_v no_o other_o commission_n but_o that_o saint_n john_n the_o baptist_n have_v and_o john_n baptize_v with_o the_o baptism_n of_o repentance_n say_v unto_o the_o people_n that_o they_o shall_v believe_v on_o he_o which_o shall_v come_v after_o he_o that_o be_v on_o christ_n jesus_n act._n 19_o vers_fw-la 4._o and_o the_o very_a apostle_n baptism_n before_o christ_n death_n be_v no_o other_o but_o the_o baptism_n of_o repentance_n and_o to_o believe_v in_o christ_n yea_o faith_n and_o repentance_n be_v the_o sum_n of_o all_o the_o preach_a both_o of_o john_n and_o of_o all_o the_o holy_a apostle_n both_o before_o christ_n death_n and_o after_o as_o we_o may_v see_v act_v 20._o vers_fw-la 21._o where_o the_o apostle_n say_v testify_v both_o to_o the_o jew_n and_o also_o to_o the_o greek_n repentance_n towards_o god_n and_o faith_n towards_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n now_o when_o the_o baptism_n of_o saint_n john_n and_o the_o apostle_n both_o before_o christ_n death_n and_o after_o be_v all_o one_o for_o substance_n and_o all_o into_o christ_n as_o we_o may_v yet_o further_o see_v act_v the_o 8._o 16._o where_o it_o be_v say_v they_o be_v baptize_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n it_o be_v no_o error_n in_o i_o to_o say_v that_o the_o baptism_n of_o john_n be_v into_o christ_n jesus_n and_o the_o very_a same_o with_o that_o of_o the_o apostle_n for_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o be_v the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n have_v so_o teach_v i_o and_o therefore_o all_o those_o that_o be_v baptize_v by_o john_n the_o baptist_n be_v as_o good_a christian_n and_o believer_n as_o those_o that_o be_v baptize_v by_o the_o apostle_n if_o repentance_n towards_o god_n and_o faith_n towards_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n and_o be_v baptize_v into_o he_o can_v make_v good_a christian_n which_o be_v blasphemy_n to_o gainsay_v and_o nothing_o else_o but_o to_o give_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n the_o lie_n and_o therefore_o j._n s._n affirm_v that_o there_o be_v a_o difference_n between_o the_o baptism_n of_o john_n and_o that_o of_o the_o apostle_n and_o deny_v that_o those_o that_o be_v baptize_v by_o john_n be_v christian_n give_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n the_o lie_n for_o the_o holy_a word_n of_o god_n which_o be_v pen_v by_o his_o spirit_n assert_v the_o contrary_a and_o for_o that_o text_n that_o he_o cit_v
this_o also_o he_o be_v a_o great_a offender_n where_o by_o this_o juggle_a craft_n of_o he_o he_o labour_v to_o seduce_v the_o poor_a people_n but_o for_o far_a answer_n i_o have_v learn_v of_o christ_n himself_o that_o the_o disciple_n be_v not_o above_o his_o master_n and_o therefore_o if_o i._o s._n will_v apply_v the_o work_n of_o conversion_n and_o add_v of_o disciple_n to_o the_o church_n unto_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o apostle_n after_o christ_n ascension_n as_o he_o do_v i_o do_v not_o conceive_v it_o any_o paradox_n in_o i_o or_o any_o mistake_n or_o anticipation_n to_o apply_v that_o work_n unto_o christ_n ministry_n in_o his_o life_n time_n for_o the_o master_n be_v ever_o more_o to_o be_v honour_v then_o the_o servant_n as_o all_o reason_n will_v dictate_v and_o therefore_o there_o be_v no_o paradox_n in_o i_o in_o give_v that_o honour_n unto_o christ_n that_o belong_v unto_o he_o who_o be_v the_o master_n for_o he_o come_v to_o save_v the_o lose_a sheep_n of_o the_o house_n of_o israel_n and_o so_o he_o do_v gather_v daily_o some_o of_o they_o into_o his_o fold_n and_o add_v many_o more_o sheep_n to_o those_o that_o john_n the_o baptist_n have_v convert_v and_o therefore_o i_o do_v not_o think_v it_o a_o paradox_n in_o i_o to_o give_v as_o much_o honour_n to_o the_o master_n as_o i._o s._n do_v to_o his_o disciple_n and_o servant_n for_o the_o honour_n of_o conversion_n and_o add_v unto_o the_o church_n be_v a_o work_n primary_o belong_v to_o the_o lord_n and_o prince_n of_o the_o church_n jesus_n christ_n it_o be_v great_a rashness_n therefore_o and_o very_o unchristian_a deal_n in_o i._n s._n to_o make_v i_o a_o subject_n of_o his_o scorn_n and_o ludibry_a for_o well_o do_v and_o to_o make_v that_o a_o sin_n and_o error_n in_o i_o which_o be_v a_o virtue_n for_o to_o give_v christ_n his_o due_a honour_n be_v a_o virtue_n now_o the_o honour_n of_o convert_v of_o man_n and_o add_v they_o unto_o the_o church_n be_v his_o proper_a work_n and_o it_o peculiar_o belong_v unto_o he_o first_o and_o last_o to_o add_v unto_o the_o church_n such_o as_o shall_v be_v save_v the_o apostle_n be_v but_o the_o instrument_n paul_n may_v plant_v and_o apollo_n may_v water_v but_o god_n the_o lord_n of_o his_o church_n give_v the_o increase_n 1_o cor._n 3._o he_o make_v the_o church_n grow_v and_o multiply_v into_o mighty_a number_n and_o add_v daily_o unto_o it_o by_o the_o mighty_a work_n of_o his_o spirit_n and_o it_o be_v marvellous_a in_o our_o eye_n and_o therefore_o i._o s._n be_v severe_o to_o be_v censure_v and_o that_o deserve_o not_o only_o for_o abuse_v his_o brethren_n make_v they_o offender_n when_o they_o be_v not_o but_o chief_o for_o anticipate_v that_o honour_n which_o be_v only_o due_a unto_o christ_n and_o god_n and_o give_v it_o and_o attribute_v it_o unto_o man_n as_o it_o be_v the_o daily_a practice_n of_o the_o independent_o to_o give_v the_o glory_n of_o all_o victory_n which_o only_o belong_v unto_o god_n to_o the_o party_n which_o they_o call_v the_o pray_a army_n and_o so_o he_o ascribe_v that_o honour_n that_o peculiar_o belong_v unto_o god_n and_o christ_n unto_o the_o apostle_n which_o indeed_o pertain_v unto_o they_o only_o as_o they_o be_v instrument_n and_o accuse_v i_o as_o of_o a_o anticipation_n and_o mistake_n say_v i_o ascribe_v that_o unto_o the_o ministry_n of_o christ_n himself_o which_o belong_v unto_o the_o disciple_n of_o christ_n after_o his_o ascension_n it_o seem_v to_o i._o s._n that_o i_o be_o a_o very_a erroneous_a man_n and_o very_o unjust_a that_o i_o give_v that_o honour_n unto_o christ_n himself_o and_o ascribe_v that_o work_n unto_o he_o which_o say_v i._o s._n belong_v to_o the_o apostle_n but_o if_o this_o be_v a_o error_n in_o say_v that_o christ_n add_v unto_o the_o church_n as_o jerusalem_n before_o his_o death_n and_o after_o his_o death_n such_o as_o shall_v be_v save_v i_o will_v live_v and_o die_v in_o this_o error_n for_o this_o be_v only_o the_o work_n of_o god_n none_o can_v come_v unto_o god_n but_o by_o christ_n he_o be_v the_o door_n the_o way_n the_o truth_n and_o the_o life_n the_o author_n and_o finisher_n of_o our_o faith_n that_o begin_v and_o end_v the_o work_n of_o conversion_n the_o apostle_n and_o all_o other_o minister_n be_v but_o his_o instrument_n he_o be_v the_o hand_n of_o god_n and_o the_o arm_n of_o the_o lord_n that_o do_v the_o work_n in_o the_o heart_n of_o the_o people_n whether_o therefore_o i._n s._n or_o my_o s●lfe_n be_v the_o most_o erroneous_a in_o their_o opinion_n and_o speak_v most_o paradox_n about_o this_o point_n i_o leave_v it_o to_o the_o censure_n and_o judgement_n of_o those_o that_o have_v more_o skill_n in_o divinity_n then_o i._n s._n or_o any_o of_o his_o fra_n ternity_n but_o shall_v i_o grant_v unto_o i._o s._n that_o the_o apostle_n after_o christ_n ascension_n have_v of_o themselves_o and_o by_o their_o own_o power_n without_o any_o help_n from_o christ_n add_v many_o unto_o the_o church_n which_o i_o yet_o never_o do_v do_v this_o i_o pray_v in_o the_o opinion_n of_o any_o wise_a man_n exclude_v christ_n add_v unto_o the_o church_n before_o his_o death_n or_o be_v it_o such_o a_o obstacle_n or_o hindrance_n to_o his_o work_n of_o convert_v man_n and_o add_v they_o unto_o the_o church_n that_o because_o it_o be_v say_v of_o the_o apostle_n after_o christ_n death_n that_o the_o lord_n by_o they_o add_v to_o the_o church_n therefore_o it_o be_v a_o error_n or_o mistake_n to_o apply_v that_o unto_o the_o ministry_n of_o christ_n that_o be_v do_v to_o the_o disciple_n i_o be_o confident_a none_o that_o be_v not_o senseless_a will_v say_v there_o be_v any_o error_n in_o so_o speak_v neither_o be_v there_o such_o a_o gulf_n between_o these_o two_o thing_n but_o that_o they_o may_v well_o meet_v christ_n may_v add_v and_o the_o apostle_n also_o for_o the_o same_o reason_n that_o make_v saint_n luke_n in_o the_o second_o of_o the_o act_n say_v the_o lord_n add_v unto_o the_o church_n daily_o such_o as_o shall_v be_v save_v confirm_v i_o in_o my_o opinion_n that_o as_o it_o be_v the_o lord_n work_v after_o his_o ascension_n to_o add_v man_n unto_o the_o church_n so_o it_o be_v his_o work_n in_o his_o life_n time_n for_o he_o be_v yesterday_o and_o to_o day_n the_o same_o for_o ever_o always_o the_o author_n and_o finisher_n of_o our_o faith_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v no_o anticipation_n or_o mistake_n in_o i_o nor_o no_o paradox_n as_o i._n s._n fond_o say_v to_o conclude_v that_o those_o that_o be_v convert_v by_o christ_n ministry_n be_v add_v to_o those_o that_o be_v convert_v by_o john_n so_o that_o there_o be_v addition_n upon_o addition_n and_o it_o be_v no_o sin_n in_o i_o to_o say_v that_o of_o christ_n then_o that_o be_v afterward_o ascribe_v unto_o he_o in_o formal_a word_n for_o although_o the_o very_a word_n be_v not_o express_v ●et_o that_o be_v set_v down_o that_o be_v equivalent_a unto_o they_o for_o it_o be_v say_v christ_n make_v more_o disciple_n than_o john_n it_o be_v his_o work_n so_o that_o the_o disputation_n now_o be_v not_o about_o word_n &_o term_n of_o expression_n but_o about_o the_o substance_n of_o thing_n viz._n about_o believer_n and_o member_n of_o the_o church_n of_o jerusalem_n which_o when_o the_o scripture_n hold_v out_o unto_o we_o affirm_v that_o christ_n make_v more_o disciple_n than_o john_n &_o that_o at_o jerusalem_n than_o any_o rational_a man_n may_v without_o any_o anticipation_n or_o mistake_n or_o any_o error_n or_o paradox_n conclude_v that_o these_o new_a convert_v be_v add_v then_o unto_o the_o church_n as_o well_o as_o those_o that_o be_v convert_v after_o his_o ascension_n be_v say_v to_o be_v add_v to_o the_o church_n and_o he_o that_o with_o the_o eye_n of_o understanding_n shall_v behold_v what_o the_o scripture_n say_v and_o shall_v but_o due_o consider_v my_o argument_n draw_v from_o thence_o will_v not_o gather_v that_o i_o make_v false_a muster_n as_o this_o fresh_a water_n soldier_n i._o s._n childish_o speak_v but_o on_o the_o contrary_n he_o will_v shrewd_o suspect_v the_o ignorance_n to_o say_v no_o worse_o that_o i_o may_v use_v some_o of_o his_o rhetoric_n of_o this_o novice_n in_o divinity_n and_o will_v also_o evident_o gather_v that_o the_o church_n at_o jerusalem_n be_v a_o particular_a church_n in_o that_o nationall_n church_n of_o the_o jew_n and_o that_o in_o the_o time_n of_o our_o saviour_n and_o withal_o he_o will_v conclude_v from_o the_o premise_n and_o all_o that_o i_o have_v now_o say_v by_o way_n of_o answer_n to_o master_n knollys_n and_o this_o i._o s._n that_o there_o be_v more_o believer_n in_o jerusalem_n then_o can_v
for_o we_o see_v what_o a_o tumult_n a_o few_o zealot_n of_o the_o law_n by_o stir_v up_o the_o people_n against_o paul_n make_v in_o the_o temple_n now_o if_o all_o the_o believer_n in_o jerusalem_n beside_o woman_n and_o child_n have_v meet_v together_o and_o some_o of_o paul_n enemy_n have_v be_v there_o also_o and_o suggest_v to_o the_o people_n that_o he_o be_v a_o enemy_n of_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n what_o a_o confusion_n may_v all_o man_n conceive_v will_v there_o then_o have_v be_v beside_o there_o be_v no_o one_o place_n can_v have_v contain_v they_o all_o and_o therefore_o master_n knollis_n his_o prattle_n be_v not_o only_o against_o all_o reason_n and_o the_o very_a opinion_n of_o all_o orthodox_n interpreter_n but_o indeed_o against_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o learn_a of_o his_o own_o party_n who_o by_o multitude_n in_o this_o as_o in_o many_o other_o place_n understand_v the_o more_o eminent_a and_o chief_a of_o believer_n and_o man_n of_o gravity_n and_o wisdom_n to_o manage_v a_o business_n and_o not_o a_o confuse_a company_n as_o this_o man_n say_v so_o that_o what_o i_o have_v reply_v in_o way_n of_o answer_n i_o persuade_v myself_o it_o sufficient_o satisfi_v all_o well_o ground_v christian_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o my_o first_o position_n to_o wit_n that_o there_o be_v more_o believer_n in_o jerusalem_n then_o can_v all_o meet_v in_o any_o one_o place_n or_o a_o few_o to_o communicate_v in_o all_o act_n of_o worship_n yet_o before_o i_o pass_v on_o to_o show_v the_o confusedness_n and_o senselessenesse_n of_o this_o master_n knollys_n his_o follow_a discourse_n i_o think_v it_o fit_v out_o of_o his_o own_o interpretation_n of_o the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o frame_v a_o argument_n for_o the_o corroborate_n of_o the_o truth_n his_o word_n be_v these_o although_o the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d do_v sometime_o signify_v ten_o thousand_o yet_o not_o always_o but_o for_o some_o great_a number_n which_o can_v sudden_o be_v tell_v i_o will_v not_o quarrel_v his_o english_a and_o the_o manner_n of_o his_o expression_n though_o it_o be_v none_o of_o the_o best_a as_o in_o many_o other_o place_n lest_o i_o shall_v seem_v to_o be_v like_o he_o and_o his_o abbertor_n to_o trifle_v about_o word_n but_o thus_o i_o argue_v out_o of_o his_o word_n where_o there_o be_v not_o only_o some_o great_a number_n of_o believer_n that_o can_v not_o sudden_o be_v tell_v but_o many_o such_o great_a sum_n there_o they_o can_v not_o all_o meet_v together_o in_o one_o place_n or_o congregation_n to_o communicate_v in_o all_o act_n of_o worship_n but_o in_o the_o church_n of_o jerusalem_n there_o be_v not_o only_o some_o great_a number_n of_o believer_n which_o can_v not_o sudden_o be_v tell_v but_o many_o such_o great_a sum_n ergo_fw-la they_o can_v not_o all_o meet_v together_o in_o any_o one_o place_n or_o congregation_n to_o partake_v in_o all_o the_o act_n of_o worship_n for_o the_o major_n it_o be_v evident_a yea_o so_o apparent_a by_o the_o very_a light_n of_o reason_n that_o no_o judicious_a christian_n can_v deny_v it_o for_o all_o man_n know_v that_o ten_o thousand_o may_v sudden_o be_v tell_v if_o five_o thousand_o may_v sudden_o be_v say_v and_o they_o likewise_o know_v that_o ten_o thousand_o can_v meet_v together_o in_o any_o one_o place_n or_o room_n or_o in_o any_o one_o congregation_n to_o communicate_v in_o all_o the_o ordinance_n this_o i_o say_v all_o man_n know_v by_o the_o very_a light_n of_o natural_a understanding_n and_o as_o by_o daily_a experience_n they_o be_v teach_v much_o more_o by_o the_o same_o reason_n they_o will_v be_v convince_v that_o many_o such_o great_a number_n can_v meet_v together_o in_o one_o congregation_n to_o communicate_v in_o all_o ordinance_n all_o this_o the_o very_a light_n of_o reason_n suggest_v to_o any_o man_n and_o therefore_o can_v be_v deny_v so_o that_o the_o major_a of_o my_o syllogism_n be_v undeniable_a and_o for_o the_o minor_a beside_o the_o holy_a scripture_n that_o assert_n there_o be_v many_o ten_o thousand_o we_o have_v master_n knollys_n his_o concession_n that_o the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d sometime_o signify_v ten_o thousand_o but_o always_o be_v take_v for_o some_o great_a number_n that_o can_v sudden_o be_v tell_v and_o the_o word_n of_o god_n say_v there_o be_v many_o myriad_n that_o be_v many_o such_o great_a number_n therefore_o by_o master_n knollys_n his_o own_o interpretation_n of_o the_o word_n it_o follow_v that_o there_o be_v more_o believer_n in_o the_o church_n of_o jerusalem_n then_o can_v all_o meet_v in_o any_o one_o place_n or_o a_o few_o to_o partake_v in_o all_o act_n of_o worship_n and_o now_o i_o will_v brief_o examine_v his_o follow_a discourse_n though_o it_o be_v little_a to_o the_o purpose_n the_o vanity_n of_o the_o which_o have_v be_v so_o often_o again_o and_o again_o discover_v in_o the_o forego_v treatise_n and_o then_o i_o will_v come_v to_o my_o brother_n burtons_n answer_n master_n knollys_n his_o word_n be_v these_o neither_o can_v the_o doctor_n make_v good_a from_o those_o scripture_n he_o produce_v pag._n 62._o to_o wit_n act_v the_o 1._o vers_fw-la 21._o 22._o chapter_n 6._o ver_fw-la 2._o 4._o and_o chapter_n the_o 8._o 1._o that_o there_o be_v almost_o a_o hundred_o preacher_n and_o ministe_n beside_o the_o twelve_o apostle_n in_o the_o church_n of_o jerusalem_n etc._n etc._n for_o answer_n in_o a_o few_o word_n i_o bold_o affirm_v what_o the_o scripture_n teach_v i_o viz_o that_o before_o the_o persecution_n we_o read_v of_o in_o the_o 8._o chap._n v._o 1._o and_o before_o the_o dispersion_n and_o scatter_n of_o the_o believer_n beside_o the_o apostle_n there_o be_v in_o the_o church_n of_o jerusalem_n almost_o a_o hundred_o preacher_n and_o minister_n and_o for_o this_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v clear_a and_o evident_a as_o in_o act_n the_o 1._o verse_n 21._o 22._o wherefore_o say_v saint_n peter_n of_o these_o man_n which_o have_v company_v with_o we_o all_o the_o time_n the_o lord_n jesus_n go_v in_o and_o out_o among_o we_o beginning_n from_o the_o baptism_n of_o john_n unto_o that_o same_o day_n that_o he_o be_v take_v up_o from_o we_o must_v one_o be_v ordain_v to_o be_v a_o witness_n with_o we_o of_o the_o resurrection_n and_o they_o appoint_v two_o joseph_n call_v barsabas_n and_o mathias_n out_o of_o the_o which_o word_n these_o ensue_a truth_n do_v necessary_o follow_v first_o that_o they_o that_o be_v assemble_v here_o with_o peter_n and_o the_o other_o apostle_n be_v ancient_a disciple_n for_o say_v the_o text_n they_o be_v such_o as_o have_v company_v with_o the_o apostle_n all_o the_o time_n the_o lord_n jesus_n go_v in_o and_o out_o among_o they_o begin_v from_o the_o baptism_n of_o john_n etc._n etc._n and_o therefore_o must_v needs_o be_v such_o as_o have_v be_v diligent_a scholar_n all_o that_o time_n in_o christ_n school_n and_o such_o as_o be_v well_o instruct_v in_o all_o christian_a principle_n as_o be_v easy_o gather_v out_o of_o the_o very_a word_n for_o any_o one_o of_o they_o be_v think_v fit_a in_o the_o apostle_n judgement_n to_o succeed_v judas_n in_o his_o place_n and_o to_o be_v a_o apostle_n in_o regard_n that_o they_o have_v hear_v and_o see_v all_o thing_n christ_n both_o speak_v and_o do_v till_o his_o death_n and_o ascension_n for_o otherwise_o they_o can_v not_o have_v be_v witness_n of_o all_o thing_n to_o his_o resurrection_n all_o this_o i_o say_v in_o the_o first_o place_n do_v necessary_o follow_v second_o this_o truth_n also_o do_v ensue_v out_o of_o the_o forego_v word_n that_o either_o all_o those_o man_n be_v minister_n or_o the_o most_o of_o they_o for_o in_o express_a term_n it_o be_v relate_v that_o they_o have_v accompany_v the_o apostle_n the_o time_n the_o lord_n jesus_n go_v in_o and_o out_o among_o they_o begin_v from_o the_o baptism_n of_o john_n until_o christ_n ascension_n now_o among_o those_o that_o converse_v with_o the_o apostle_n beside_o john_n scholar_n christ_n have_v seventy_o disciple_n all_o minister_n which_o he_o send_v out_o two_o by_o two_o into_o all_o city_n to_o preach_v and_o to_o work_v wonder_n who_o come_v back_o again_o to_o he_o rejoice_v that_o the_o devil_n be_v subject_a unto_o they_o and_o they_o still_o wait_v upon_o christ_n ministry_n we_o read_v also_o of_o many_o of_o johns_n disciple_n that_o come_v unto_o christ_n all_o which_o be_v minister_n likewise_o and_o such_o as_o preach_v and_o baptize_v and_o all_o these_o be_v with_o peter_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n at_o this_o time_n &_o continue_v with_o they_o till_o the_o persecution_n for_o we_o read_v of_o no_o departure_n of_o they_o or_o separation_n till_o then_o and_o all_o these_o be_v man_n
it_o as_o the_o ensue_a place_n sufficient_o prove_v rom._n 16._o ver_fw-la 17_o and_o 18._o now_o i_o beseech_v you_o brethren_n say_v the_o apostle_n mark_v they_o which_o cause_n division_n and_o offence_n contrary_a to_o the_o doctrine_n which_o you_o have_v learn_v and_o avoid_v they_o 1_o cor._n chap._n the_o 5._o ver_fw-la 11._o but_o now_o i_o have_v write_v unto_o you_o say_v saint_n paul_n not_o to_o keep_v company_n if_o any_o man_n that_o be_v call_v a_o brother_n be_v a_o fornicator_n or_o covetous_a or_o a_o idolater_n or_o a_o railer_n or_o a_o drunkard_n or_o a_o extortioner_n with_o such_o a_o one_o no_v not_o to_o eat_v 1_o tim._n chap._n the_o 6._o ver_fw-la the_o 3._o and_o 5._o if_o any_o man_n teach_v otherwise_o and_o consent_v not_o to_o wholesome_a word_n even_o the_o word_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n and_o to_o the_o doctrine_n which_o be_v according_a to_o godliness_n from_o such_o withdraw_v thyself_o and_o 2_o tim._n chap._n 3._o ver_fw-la 1_o 2_o 3_o 4_o 5._o in_o the_o last_o day_n say_v the_o apostle_n shall_v perilous_a time_n come_v for_o man_n shall_v be_v lover_n of_o their_o own_o self_n covetous_a boaster_n proud_a blasphemer_n disobedient_a to_o parent_n without_o natural_a affection_n covenant_n or_o truce-breaker_n false_a accuser_n or_o makebate_n incontinent_a fierce_a despiser_n of_o those_o that_o be_v good_a traitorous_a heady_a high-minded_a lover_n of_o pleasure_n more_o than_o lover_n of_o god_n have_v a_o form_n of_o godliness_n but_o deny_v the_o power_n thereof_o from_o such_o t●rne_n away_o for_o of_o this_o sort_n be_v they_o which_o creep_v into_o widow_n house_n and_o lead_v captive_a silly_a woman_n lade_v with_o sin_n etc._n etc._n tit._n 3._o ver_fw-la 10._o a_o man_n that_o be_v a_o heretic_n after_o the_o first_o and_o second_o admonition_n reject_v say_v the_o apostle_n 2._o john_n ver_fw-la 10._o if_o there_o come_v any_o unto_o you_o say_v saint_n john_n and_o bring_v not_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n receive_v he_o not_o into_o your_o house_n neither_o bid_v he_o god_n speed_n for_o he_o that_o bid_v he_o god_n speed_n be_v partaker_n of_o his_o evil_a deed_n and_o gal_n 1._o ver_fw-la 8_o 9_o if_o we_o or_o a_o angel_n from_o heaven_n say_v the_o apostle_n preach_v otherwise_o then_o that_o which_o we_o have_v preach_v unto_o you_o let_v he_o be_v accurse_v as_o i_o say_v before_o so_o i_o say_v now_o again_o if_o any_o man_n preach_v unto_o you_o any_o other_o gospel_n then_o that_o you_o have_v receive_v let_v he_o be_v occurse_v out_o of_o all_o the_o which_o place_n and_o many_o more_o that_o may_v be_v produce_v we_o be_v teach_v to_o shun_v and_o decline_v the_o society_n and_o fellowship_n of_o all_o such_o christian_n as_o be_v corrupt_a in_o their_o doctrine_n or_o manner_n and_o such_o as_o either_o preach_v or_o practice_v otherwise_o then_o they_o have_v precept_n or_o example_n for_o in_o the_o holy_a word_n of_o god_n especial_o we_o be_v to_o have_v no_o communion_n with_o they_o when_o they_o not_o only_o preach_v another_o way_n to_o heaven_n then_o that_o which_o christ_n and_o the_o holy_a prophet_n and_o bless_a apostle_n have_v chalk_v out_o unto_o we_o and_o deliver_v unto_o the_o church_n but_o have_v join_v themselves_o in_o a_o wicked_a and_o unwarrantable_a covenant_n to_o persist_v and_o continue_v in_o this_o practice_n for_o they_o be_v no_o saint_n but_o such_o be_v those_o of_o the_o congregationall_a way_n who_o teacher_n and_o member_n be_v combine_v together_o to_o persevere_v in_o their_o wicked_a practice_n and_o course_n and_o therefore_o by_o express_a command_n from_o heaven_n we_o be_v to_o have_v no_o communion_n with_o such_o unless_o we_o will_v be_v find_v fighter_n against_o god_n and_o partake_v in_o their_o punishment_n and_o these_o place_n of_o holy_a scripture_n with_o these_o reason_n shall_v suffice_v for_o the_o proof_n of_o the_o major_a proposition_n for_o the_o minor_a that_o the_o church_n and_o assembly_n of_o those_o of_o the_o congregationall_a way_n consist_v of_o railer_n reviler_n slanderer_n and_o covenant-breaker_n etc._n etc._n it_o be_v evident_a and_o well_o know_v to_o all_o such_o as_o be_v acquaint_v with_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o independent_o and_o be_v verse_v in_o their_o doctrine_n and_o have_v read_v their_o pamphlet_n which_o consist_v chief_o of_o error_n untruth_n and_o right-downe_a railing_n as_o among_o other_o those_o of_o my_o brother_n burton_n and_o john_n lilburne_n not_o to_o mention_v the_o pamphlet_n of_o all_o the_o other_o independent_o the_o very_a name_n of_o which_o will_v make_v a_o book_n in_o all_o the_o which_o there_o be_v little_a other_o but_o rail_v and_o dangerous_a novelty_n some_o of_o my_o brother_n burtons_n and_o john_n lilburnes_n expression_n with_o a_o other_o or_o two_o more_o which_o write_v in_o the_o name_n of_o all_o the_o independent_o i_o will_v produce_v that_o by_o the_o mouth_n of_o two_o or_o three_o of_o their_o witness_n the_o truth_n of_o their_o proceed_n in_o their_o rail_n error_n and_o lie_n and_o bad_a practice_n may_v be_v yet_o more_o evident_a my_o brother_n burton_n in_o his_o vindication_n have_v these_o ensue_a word_n against_o all_o the_o presbyterian_o both_o minister_n and_o people_n and_o first_o against_o the_o minister_n of_o who_o he_o say_v that_o they_o deny_v disclaim_v and_o preach_v against_o christ_n kingly_a government_n over_o man_n conscience_n and_o church_n so_o that_o such_o a_o conversion_n as_o be_v wrought_v by_o they_o come_v not_o home_n to_o whole_a christ_n and_o such_o with_o their_o converter_n do_v deny_v christ_n kingly_a government_n or_o at_o least_o and_o best_a they_o be_v convert_v but_o in_o part_n and_o that_o main_a thing_n be_v want_v to_o wit_n christ_n kingly_a office_n and_o in_o his_o vindiciae_fw-la veritatis_fw-la he_o accuse_v i_o pag._n 21._o for_o take_v christ_n name_n in_o vain_a because_o in_o my_o book_n i_o assert_v that_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n set_v up_o christ_n upon_o his_o throne_n which_o for_o i_o to_o affirm_v he_o say_v it_o be_v to_o take_v the_o name_n of_o christ_n in_o vain_a his_o word_n be_v these_o and_o here_o say_v he_o i_o challenge_v our_o brother_n for_o take_v christ_n name_n in_o vain_a when_o instead_o of_o find_v christ_n set_v upon_o his_o throne_n in_o their_o congregation_n we_o find_v there_o no_o more_o but_o a_o image_n such_o as_o michal_n have_v make_v up_o instead_o of_o king_n david_n or_o as_o those_o that_o in_o mockery_n make_v of_o christ_n a_o pageant_n king_n strip_v he_o and_o put_v on_o he_o a_o scarlet_a robe_n and_o on_o his_o head_n a_o crown_n of_o thorn_n and_o in_o his_o hand_n a_o reed_n salute_v he_o with_o haile_o king_n of_o the_o jew_n with_o which_o title_n over_o his_o head_n they_o crucify_v he_o therefore_o say_v he_o those_o passage_n quote_v out_o of_o my_o book_n will_v stand_v good_a against_o their_o opposer_n these_o be_v his_o word_n against_o all_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n now_o of_o all_o the_o people_n that_o be_v not_o of_o the_o congregationall_a way_n and_o of_o their_o new_a assembly_n my_o brother_n burton_n in_o his_o vindication_n have_v these_o word_n we_o exhort_v they_o say_v he_o to_o set_v up_o christ_n king_n in_o their_o heart_n we_o exhort_v they_o to_o become_v and_o profess_v to_o be_v those_o saint_n of_o who_o christ_n be_v king_n for_o he_o be_v king_n of_o saint_n revel_v 15._o 3._o but_o they_o will_v not_o believe_v we_o say_v he_o they_o will_v not_o depend_v upon_o christ_n as_o the_o only_a lawgiver_n and_o king_n over_o their_o conscience_n now_o what_o will_v you_o have_v we_o to_o do_v in_o this_o case_n say_v he_o baptize_v the_o infant_n of_o such_o parent_n as_o will_v not_o in_o this_o respect_n profess_v or_o confess_v christ_n to_o be_v their_o king_n why_o do_v you_o not_o know_v say_v he_o that_o no_o infant_n have_v any_o title_n to_o baptism_n that_o be_v not_o within_o the_o covenant_n visible_o and_o how_o be_v they_o within_o the_o covenant_n visible_o but_o by_o virtue_n of_o their_o parent_n faith_n outward_o profess_v and_o what_o outward_a profession_n of_o faith_n be_v there_o in_o their_o parent_n that_o refuse_v christ_n for_o their_o only_a king_n that_o be_v ashamed_a or_o afraid_a to_o profess_v to_o be_v in_o covenant_n with_o christ_n as_o their_o king_n if_o therefore_o the_o parent_n profess_v not_o yea_o refuse_v thus_o to_o be_v in_o visible_a covenant_n can_v the_o child_n be_v say_v to_o be_v in_o visible_a covenant_n and_o so_o to_o have_v a_o right_n in_o baptism_n the_o external_a seal_n of_o the_o covenant_n here_o be_v a_o obex_fw-la a_o bar_n put_v these_o be_v my_o brother_n burtons_n own_o
character_n be_v evident_o visible_a and_o apparent_a and_o those_o that_o either_o countenance_n vile_a person_n and_o honour_v not_o such_o as_o fear_v the_o lord_n or_o break_v their_o vow_n promise_n and_o covenant_n with_o either_o god_n or_o man_n they_o in_o god_n repute_n be_v not_o saint_n indeed_o pretend_v they_o what_o they_o will_v but_o be_v wicked_a and_o ungodly_a man_n and_o such_o as_o bring_v down_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n upon_o the_o place_n where_o they_o live_v for_o as_o solomon_n say_v by_o the_o blessing_n of_o the_o righteous_a the_o city_n be_v save_v so_o by_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o wicked_a it_o be_v overthrow_v prov._n 11._o for_o 11._o wicked_a and_o ungodly_a man_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o ruin_n of_o city_n and_o country_n according_a to_o that_o of_o saint_n paul_n the_o second_o of_o timothy_n chap._n 3._o ver_fw-la 1_o 2_o 3_o 4_o 5._o this_o know_v also_o say_v he_o that_o in_o the_o last_o day_n perilous_a time_n shall_v come_v for_o man_n shall_v be_v lover_n of_o their_o own_o self_n covetous_a boaster_n proud_a blasphemer_n disobedient_a to_o parent_n unthankful_a unholy_a without_o natural_a affection_n covenant-breaker_n false_a accuser_n incontinent_a fierce_a despiser_n of_o those_o that_o be_v good_a traitorous_a heady_a high-minded_a lover_n of_o pleasure_n more_o than_o lover_n of_o god_n have_v a_o form_n of_o godliness_n but_o deny_v the_o power_n thereof_o from_o such_o turn_n away_o for_o of_o this_o sort_n be_v they_o which_o creep_v into_o widow_n house_n and_o lead_v captive_a silly_a woman_n lade_v with_o sin_n lead_v away_o with_o divers_a lust_n etc._n etc._n in_o the_o which_o word_n brief_o we_o may_v take_v notice_n that_o the_o apostle_n set_v down_o the_o reason_n of_o the_o perilousnesse_n and_o danger_n of_o the_o latter_a time_n say_v not_o that_o either_o in_o respect_n of_o war_n or_o pestilence_n or_o famine_n or_o earthquake_n or_o inundation_n or_o murder_n slaughter_n and_o robbery_n or_o for_o any_o such_o calamity_n the_o lastdaye_n and_o time_n shall_v be_v perilous_a but_o they_o shall_v be_v perilous_a time_n say_v he_o for_o that_o man_n shall_v be_v lover_n of_o themselves_o covenant-breaker_n false_a accuser_n covetous_a etc._n etc._n so_o that_o self-love_n covetousness_n false_a accusation_n of_o their_o brethren_n and_o covenant-breaking_a etc._n etc._n be_v the_o cause_n that_o make_v time_n perilous_a and_o bring_v down_o the_o judgement_n of_o god_n upon_o any_o city_n and_o place_n where_o the_o inhabitant_n be_v practiser_n of_o these_o sin_n and_o therefore_o the_o apostle_n after_o he_o have_v forewarn_v all_o such_o as_o fear_n god_n of_o the_o cause_n of_o all_o the_o evil_n that_o be_v come_v upon_o the_o world_n command_v all_o the_o true_a saint_n indeed_o to_o take_v heed_n of_o such_o man_n and_o in_o express_a word_n say_v from_o such_o turn_n away_o have_v nothing_o to_o do_v with_o such_o for_o all_o covenant-breaker_n and_o false_a accuser_n and_o such_o as_o countenance_v vile_a person_n and_o honour_v not_o they_o that_o fear_v the_o lord_n and_o such_o as_o keep_v not_o their_o word_n and_o promise_n with_o neither_o god_n nor_o man_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o peril_n and_o misery_n that_o shall_v come_v upon_o the_o world_n and_o therefore_o all_o such_o be_v not_o saint_n indeed_o but_o aught_o to_o be_v abhor_v and_o avoid_v according_a to_o that_o of_o solomon_n prov._n 4._o for_o 14_o 15._o enter_v not_o say_v he_o into_o the_o path_n of_o the_o wicked_a and_o go_v not_o into_o the_o way_n of_o evil_a man_n avoid_v it_o pass_v not_o by_o it_o turn_v from_o it_o and_o pass_v away_o here_o we_o see_v the_o wise_a man_n as_o if_o he_o can_v never_o have_v give_v caution_n enough_o to_o all_o his_o scholar_n by_o many_o reduplication_n of_o his_o word_n give_v all_o the_o people_n of_o god_n a_o strict_a charge_n not_o so_o much_o as_o to_o company_n with_o such_o man_n and_o that_o for_o the_o many_o reason_n set_v down_o in_o the_o follow_a verse_n but_o this_o reason_n specify_v by_o saint_n paul_n may_v suffice_v who_o say_v that_o all_o covenant-breaker_n and_o false_a accuser_n and_o self-seekers_a be_v the_o cause_n of_o perilous_a time_n and_o so_o be_v all_o such_o in_o who_o eye_n a_o vile_a person_n be_v not_o contemn_v and_o who_o honour_v not_o such_o as_o fear_v the_o lord_n and_o who_o keep_v not_o their_o covenant_n and_o promise_v for_o all_o such_o be_v no_o saint_n in_o god_n esteem_n and_o therefore_o a_o wicked_a generation_n of_o man_n and_o such_o as_o make_v the_o time_n wherein_o they_o live_v perilous_a and_o dangerous_a and_o therefore_o ought_v by_o all_o the_o true_a saint_n and_o godly_a to_o be_v shun_v and_o avoid_v now_o if_o it_o can_v be_v prove_v that_o the_o independent_o be_v such_o as_o in_o who_o eye_n a_o vile_a person_n be_v not_o contemn_v and_o such_o as_o honour_v not_o those_o that_o fear_v the_o lord_n and_o such_o as_o keep_v not_o their_o word_n and_o promise_n neither_o with_o god_n nor_o man_n but_o be_v notorious_a covenant-breaker_n or_o assenter_n to_o all_o such_o person_n than_o it_o will_v follow_v that_o they_o be_v not_o saint_n indeed_o for_o the_o character_n of_o the_o true_a saint_n be_v to_o contemn_v a_o vile_a person_n &_o to_o honour_v those_o that_o fear_v the_o lord_n and_o to_o keep_v their_o vow_n and_o promise_n both_o with_o god_n and_o man_n for_o not_o only_o the_o psalmist_n thus_o describe_v the_o true_a saint_n but_o saint_n john_n also_o say_v by_o this_o man_n be_v know_v to_o be_v saint_n if_o they_o love_v the_o brethren_n by_o this_o say_v christ_n you_o shall_v be_v know_v to_o be_v my_o disciple_n that_o be_v saint_n indeed_o if_o you_o love_v one_o another_o i_o shall_v therefore_o demand_v of_o any_o well_o ground_a christian_a whether_o they_o believe_v that_o those_o that_o run_v from_o place_n to_o place_n and_o join_v with_o any_o wicked_a and_o ungodly_a man_n and_o seek_v their_o advancement_n &_o that_o to_o place_n of_o the_o great_a trust_n in_o the_o kingdom_n and_o prefer_v they_o before_o such_o as_o they_o daily_o acknowledge_v to_o be_v godly_a and_o true_o religious_a and_o will_v run_v from_o committee_n to_o committee_n to_o do_v the_o most_o wicked_a and_o vile_a man_n and_o know_a malignant_n any_o courtesy_n and_o will_v both_o in_o word_n countenance_n and_o deed_n favour_n and_o honour_v they_o i_o demand_v i_o say_v whether_o they_o think_v that_o in_o such_o man_n eye_n as_o will_v do_v all_o these_o office_n to_o wicked_a person_n and_o that_o in_o opposition_n to_o any_o of_o their_o godly_a brethren_n and_o that_o will_v at_o any_o time_n join_v with_o any_o such_o against_o either_o the_o godly_a and_o painful_a minister_n or_o their_o presbyterian_a brethren_n to_o defame_v they_o or_o do_v they_o any_o mischief_n or_o to_o remove_v they_o from_o their_o place_n and_o livelyhood_n or_o for_o the_o hinder_v of_o their_o preferment_n yea_o and_o which_o be_v more_o for_o the_o hinder_v of_o the_o work_n of_o reformation_n in_o the_o church_n i_o demand_v i_o say_v of_o any_o true_o godly_a christian_a whether_o they_o think_v that_o in_o any_o such_o man_n eye_n as_o do_v all_o these_o office_n and_o courtesy_n to_o wicked_a and_o ungodly_a man_n a_o vile_a person_n be_v contemn_v when_o he_o daily_o see_v the_o contrary_a that_o they_o honour_v they_o and_o prefer_v they_o before_o such_o as_o fear_v the_o lord_n i_o be_o most_o assure_a he_o will_v conclude_v and_o affirm_v that_o in_o their_o eye_n a_o vile_a person_n be_v not_o contemn_v now_o that_o this_o be_v the_o daily_a practice_n of_o the_o independent_o i_o undertake_v upon_o my_o life_n to_o prove_v it_o by_o a_o cloud_n of_o witness_n and_o that_o there_o be_v not_o the_o vile_a person_n nor_o the_o wicked_a wretch_n that_o they_o will_v not_o join_v with_o to_o do_v any_o of_o their_o presbyterian_a brethren_n a_o mischief_n &_o that_o they_o will_v not_o give_v credit_n to_o in_o false_o belie_v their_o brethren_n yea_o it_o can_v be_v prove_v that_o when_o the_o independent_o have_v be_v demand_v by_o some_o godly_a and_o orthodox_n minister_n why_o they_o have_v leave_v the_o public_a assembly_n see_v there_o be_v now_o no_o ceremony_n nor_o any_o thing_n in_o their_o doctrine_n that_o they_o can_v find_v fault_n with_o and_o they_o have_v reply_v that_o it_o be_v in_o regard_n that_o their_o congregation_n be_v mix_v that_o tagg_n rag_n and_o all_o sort_n of_o man_n be_v admit_v to_o the_o sacrament_n with_o who_o they_o can_v not_o join_v whereupon_o the_o minister_n that_o they_o may_v remove_v this_o scandal_n and_o offence_n labour_v by_o all_o mean_n to_o persuade_v the_o people_n so_o to_o behave_v themselves_o as_o they_o may_v manifest_v unto_o
person_n the_o three_o essential_a part_n of_o sovereign_a power_n in_o any_o state_n be_v this_o to_o make_v war_n and_o peace_n at_o pleasure_n either_o foreign_a or_o domestical_a upon_o any_o just_a occasion_n and_o to_o have_v the_o manage_n of_o the_o militia_n etc._n etc._n so_o that_o those_o only_a in_o who_o hand_n this_o authority_n lie_v they_o be_v repute_v and_o indeed_o be_v the_o supreme_a ruler_n in_o that_o state_n the_o four_o essential_a property_n of_o superlative_a power_n and_o authority_n in_o any_o government_n or_o state_n be_v this_o to_o have_v a_o court_n of_o ultimate_a resort_n to_o the_o which_o all_o man_n may_v fly_v for_o relief_n and_o to_o the_o which_o all_o appeal_v by_o all_o person_n from_o all_o part_n within_o their_o jurisdiction_n and_o from_o all_o inferior_a court_n be_v make_v upon_o any_o unjustice_n do_v they_o there_o or_o upon_o any_o pressure_n or_o grievance_n by_o any_o one_o in_o authority_n and_o in_o who_o power_n it_o be_v to_o end_n and_o determine_v all_o controversy_n and_o difference_n or_o to_o redress_v all_o abuse_n and_o to_o relieve_v the_o oppress_v so_o that_o in_o who_o hand_n soever_o this_o authority_n reside_v they_o only_o be_v say_v to_o exercise_v the_o sovereign_a power_n and_o to_o be_v the_o sole_a governor_n and_o moderator_n in_o that_o state_n the_o five_o and_o last_o pa●t_n of_o supreme_a authority_n in_o any_o state_n consist_v in_o this_o that_o they_o have_v the_o power_n of_o press_v and_o stamp_v money_n and_o coin_n and_o set_v the_o valution_n upon_o they_o or_o any_o other_o money_n that_o be_v currant_n in_o their_o country_n or_o have_v the_o dispose_n of_o the_o treasury_n of_o those_o state_n in_o which_o they_o live_v and_o have_v the_o exchequer_n in_o their_o hand_n and_o all_o the_o revenue_n of_o they_o and_o to_o who_o all_o the_o tribute_n subsidy_n assessment_n custom_n benevolence_n and_o collection_n of_o the_o people_n that_o be_v gather_v for_o the_o common_a relief_n and_o preservation_n of_o the_o whole_a country_n or_o state_n be_v send_v and_o who_o have_v the_o dispose_n of_o they_o according_a to_o their_o wisdom_n in_o those_o man_n hand_n i_o say_v that_o this_o power_n ●esideth_v of_o dispose_v the_o treasury_n or_o revenue_n they_o and_o they_o only_o be_v the_o supreme_a magistrate_n and_o ruler_n in_o that_o state_n as_o at_o this_o day_n it_o reside_v with_o all_o the_o former_a essential_a property_n in_o the_o hand_n of_o king_n and_o parliament_n that_o great_a council_n of_o the_o kingdom_n by_o all_o which_o it_o sufficient_o appear_v that_o all_o sovereign_a power_n reside_v in_o they_o only_o and_o be_v sole_o exercise_v and_o manage_v by_o they_o so_o that_o if_o master_n knollys_n shall_v say_v that_o it_o do_v not_o prove_v that_o the_o government_n lie_v now_o in_o the_o hand_n of_o king_n and_o parliament_n that_o great_a court_n because_o the_o contribution_n collection_n and_o excise_n from_o all_o part_n of_o the_o kingdom_n be_v send_v unto_o they_o and_o be_v now_o at_o their_o dispose_n i_o believe_v the_o great_a council_n will_v teach_v he_o a_o little_a more_o wit_n and_o all_o those_o his_o brethren_n that_o shall_v join_v with_o he_o in_o this_o his_o argumentation_n a_o little_a better_a manner_n now_o if_o we_o will_v compare_v thing_n together_o we_o shall_v find_v that_o whatsoever_o can_v prove_v the_o sovereign_a power_n in_o all_o secular_a government_n to_o be_v in_o those_o man_n hand_n which_o exercise_v it_o the_o same_o may_v be_v say_v concern_v the_o ecclesiastical_a government_n in_o the_o church_n at_o jerusalem_n and_o of_o the_o apostle_n and_o presbyter_n of_o that_o church_n who_o be_v the_o chief_a officer_n and_o man_n in_o authority_n in_o it_o that_o the_o government_n and_o sovereign_a power_n in_o that_o church_n lie_v in_o their_o hand_n only_o so_o that_o it_o will_v then_o undeniable_o follow_v that_o my_o argument_n will_v for_o ever_o stand_v good_a against_o master_n knolly_n fond_a cavil_n for_o the_o prove_v of_o these_o two_o truth_n viz._n that_o the_o presbyter_n in_o the_o church_n at_o jerusalem_n and_o in_o all_o other_o church_n be_v the_o only_a governor_n in_o those_o church_n and_o that_o from_o this_o reason_n because_o the_o alm_n be_v send_v unto_o they_o and_o because_o they_o have_v the_o dispose_n of_o the_o treasury_n of_o the_o church_n this_o i_o say_v will_v in_o the_o first_o place_n necessary_o follow_v the_o second_o truth_n that_o will_v result_v out_o of_o the_o word_n be_v this_o that_o the_o apostle_n and_o presbyter_n govern_v and_o rule_v that_o church_n by_o a_o common-council_n and_o presbytery_n both_o which_o master_n knollys_n vain_o deny_v will_v follow_v from_o my_o argument_n but_o for_o the_o far_a elucidation_n of_o this_o truth_n and_o that_o it_o may_v the_o better_o appear_v unto_o all_o man_n i_o will_v brief_o run_v over_o the_o essential_a property_n and_o part_n of_o supreme_a and_o sovereign_a power_n that_o be_v exercise_v in_o that_o church_n and_o show_v that_o they_o reside_v only_o and_o sole_o in_o the_o apostle_n and_o presbyter_n hand_n who_o be_v the_o governor_n of_o that_o church_n and_o that_o the_o people_n have_v nothing_o to_o do_v with_o they_o and_o for_o the_o first_o to_o wit_n the_o legislative_a power_n it_o be_v in_o the_o church_n of_o jerusalem_n and_o commit_v only_o into_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o presbytery_n of_o that_o church_n as_o who_o have_v receive_v the_o key_n matth._n 16._o and_o matth._n 18._o for_o so_o say_v the_o prophet_n isaiah_n chapter_n the_o 2._o verse_n 2._o out_o of_o zion_n shall_v go_v forth_o the_o law_n and_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n from_o jerusalem_n and_o act_v the_o 1._o vers_fw-la 2._o 3._o it_o be_v say_v that_o christ_n for_o the_o time_n that_o he_o remain_v upon_o the_o earth_n after_o his_o resurrection_n through_o the_o holy_a ghost_n give_v commandment_n unto_o the_o apostle_n who_o he_o have_v choose_v speak_v to_o they_o of_o the_o thing_n pertain_v to_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n and_o command_v they_o that_o they_o shall_v not_o depart_v from_o jerusalem_n but_o wait_v for_o the_o promise_n of_o the_o father_n which_o be_v that_o he_o will_v send_v they_o the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o comforter_n which_o shall_v teach_v they_o all_o thing_n and_o bring_v all_o thing_n unto_o their_o remembrance_n whatsoever_o christ_n have_v say_v unto_o they_o and_o that_o he_o shall_v abide_v with_o they_o for_o ever_o john_n 14._o verse_n 26._o and_o lead_v they_o into_o all_o truth_n and_o in_o the_o fifteen_o chapter_n he_o call_v his_o apostle_n his_o friend_n tell_v they_o that_o he_o have_v make_v know_v unto_o they_o all_o thing_n that_o he_o have_v hear_v from_o his_o father_n verse_n 15._o and_o he_o promise_v that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n shall_v bring_v all_o those_o thing_n to_o their_o memory_n and_o in_o the_o same_o chapter_n in_o the_o 26._o verse_n christ_n say_v when_o the_o comforter_n be_v come_v who_o i_o will_v send_v unto_o you_o from_o the_o father_n even_o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n which_o proceed_v from_o the_o father_n he_o shall_v testify_v of_o i_o from_o all_o which_o place_n and_o from_o the_o 28._o of_o matth._n verse_n 18_o 19_o 20._o mark_n the_o 16._o verse_n 15_o 16_o 17_o 18._o and_o john_n the_o 20._o verse_n 21_o 22_o 23._o and_o many_o more_o that_o may_v be_v allege_v it_o be_v apparent_o evident_a that_o the_o apostle_n and_o presbyter_n in_o the_o church_n of_o jerusalem_n be_v invest_v with_o a_o legislative_a power_n so_o that_o whatsoever_o they_o preach_v or_o write_v that_o we_o find_v record_v in_o the_o holy_a word_n of_o god_n they_o be_v all_o the_o statute_n and_o law_n of_o the_o king_n of_o his_o church_n christ_n jesus_n and_o by_o the_o which_o all_o christ_n subject_n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n be_v to_o be_v regulate_v and_o govern_v the_o apostle_n and_o presbyter_n in_o the_o church_n of_o jerusalem_n have_v power_n also_o to_o abrogate_v old_a law_n and_o to_o enact_v and_o establish_v new_a one_o as_o we_o may_v see_v act._n 15._o and_o act._n 16._o yea_o they_o have_v power_n of_o life_n and_o death_n of_o which_o we_o have_v one_o example_n in_o ananias_n and_o saphira_n act._n 5._o yea_o they_o raise_v the_o dead_a cure_v the_o lame_a and_o heal_v the_o sick_a with_o their_o very_a shadow_n and_o all_o this_o power_n be_v give_v unto_o they_o for_o the_o ratify_n of_o their_o authority_n and_o to_o show_v they_o be_v send_v of_o god_n withal_o they_o have_v the_o power_n of_o erect_v new_a office_n and_o create_v new_a officer_n not_o only_o in_o jerusalem_n but_o in_o all_o the_o church_n as_o that_o office_n of_o deacon_n in_o the_o six_o of_o the_o act_n and_o the_o
read_v this_o book_n i_o will_v here_o again_o repeat_v his_o answer_n to_o my_o argument_n with_o his_o distinction_n the_o jndependent_o say_v he_o grant_v that_o it_o be_v the_o presbyter_n part_v to_o rule_v but_o say_v he_o we_o distinguish_v between_o authority_n and_o jurisdiction_n on_o the_o one_o hand_n and_o power_n and_o interest_n on_o the_o other_o this_o latter_a belong_v unto_o the_o people_n the_o other_o be_v proper_a to_o the_o officer_n which_o they_o exercise_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o church_n etc._n etc._n if_o he_o have_v say_v in_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n it_o have_v be_v better_a but_o all_o error_n be_v like_a unto_o sin_n it_o seldom_o go_v single_a and_o alone_a for_o here_o i._n s._n commit_v a_o multiforme_a error_n in_o rob_v not_o only_o the_o presbyter_n and_o minister_n of_o christ_n of_o their_o due_a honour_n but_o in_o rob_v also_o the_o lord_n of_o life_n himself_o of_o his_o dignity_n and_o royalty_n and_o make_v all_o the_o minister_n and_o officer_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o his_o peculiar_a servant_n but_o the_o vassal_n and_o slave_n of_o the_o people_n who_o they_o call_v the_o church_n so_o that_o according_a to_o i._o s._n his_o learning_n all_o the_o officer_n and_o minister_n of_o christ_n be_v at_o the_o people_n dispose_n for_o they_o be_v all_o of_o they_o to_o act_v as_o the_o church_n direct_v they_o and_o they_o must_v do_v it_o always_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o church_n and_o this_o be_v the_o hysteron_fw-gr proteron_fw-gr divinity_n of_o the_o independent_o in_o all_o which_o they_o deal_v most_o wicked_o on_o every_o side_n so_o that_o when_o they_o seem_v to_o speak_v the_o minister_n fair_o they_o abuse_v they_o to_o their_o face_n for_o here_o i._n s._n by_o that_o distinction_n of_o he_o will_v persuade_v the_o world_n that_o the_o independent_o give_v great_a honour_n to_o the_o minister_n in_o say_v that_o authority_n and_o jurisdiction_n belong_v unto_o they_o and_o be_v they_o proper_o and_o that_o only_a power_n and_o interest_n belong_v unto_o the_o people_n and_o yet_o in_o the_o same_o breath_n before_o he_o have_v pass_v two_o step_n by_o his_o own_o description_n of_o the_o power_n and_o interest_n which_o he_o grant_v unto_o the_o people_n he_o give_v away_o all_o that_o authority_n and_o jurisdiction_n that_o he_o speak_v of_o a_o little_a before_o not_o only_o from_o all_o the_o minister_n and_o presbyter_n of_o the_o gospel_n but_o from_o christ_n himself_o the_o king_n of_o his_o church_n and_o invest_v the_o people_n with_o it_o which_o he_o call_v the_o church_n say_v that_o the_o officer_n be_v to_o exercise_v their_o authority_n and_o jurisdiction_n in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o church_n so_o that_o it_o be_v evident_a according_a to_o his_o divinity_n that_o the_o minister_n of_o jesus_n christ_n be_v but_o the_o slave_n of_o the_o people_n and_o that_o all_o man_n may_v see_v that_o this_o be_v his_o meaning_n he_o in_o the_o 12._o page_n say_v that_o the_o very_a apostle_n and_o elder_n in_o the_o council_n and_o synod_n at_o jerusalem_n be_v but_o as_o a_o committee_n to_o prepare_v the_o dispute_n and_o then_o to_o report_v it_o for_o the_o assistance_n nnd_v concurrence_n of_o the_o multitude_n these_o be_v his_o own_o word_n by_o all_o which_o if_o hegive_v not_o the_o people_n by_o his_o distinction_n of_o power_n and_o interest_n a_o great_a authority_n than_o he_o give_v unto_o the_o apostle_n and_o presbyter_n and_o to_o christ_n himself_o let_v every_o ingenious_a man_n judge_n which_o be_v not_o only_o a_o horrid_a impiety_n but_o abominable_a in_o justice_n &_o sacrilege_n yea_o every_o man_n may_v plain_o perceive_v &_o that_o out_o of_o his_o own_o word_n and_o from_o the_o language_n of_o all_o the_o independent_o that_o he_o invest_v the_o people_n with_o all_o authority_n under_o that_o distinction_n of_o power_n and_o interest_n for_o in_o say_v in_o the_o same_o pag._n that_o in_o ordination_n election_n of_o officer_n belong_v unto_o the_o brethren_n and_o imposition_n of_o hand_n to_o the_o officer_n where_o there_o be_v officer_n as_o in_o a_o church_n constitute_v and_o complete_a by_o these_o word_n he_o invest_v the_o people_n with_o all_o full_a and_o ample_a authority_n as_o any_o man_n be_v capable_a of_o or_o can_v be_v betrust_v with_o for_o among_o many_o of_o the_o independent_o to_o my_o knowledge_n they_o make_v nothing_o of_o ordination_n and_o imposition_n of_o hand_n and_o count_v it_o but_o a_o compliment_n that_o make_v nothing_o to_o the_o essence_n of_o any_o officer_n as_o they_o say_v for_o they_o assert_v that_o it_o be_v sufficient_a to_o make_v any_o man_n a_o officer_n or_o minister_n if_o he_o be_v once_o choose_v by_o the_o people_n and_o it_o be_v the_o election_n of_o the_o church_n and_o their_o call_n as_o they_o say_v that_o make_v officer_n without_o which_o they_o affirm_v they_o can_v be_v no_o true_a officer_n so_o that_o if_o election_n be_v the_o main_a and_o essential_a business_n require_v for_o the_o make_n of_o church-officer_n and_o as_o they_o teach_v their_o follower_n and_o they_o give_v the_o power_n of_o election_n to_o the_o church_n or_o people_n and_o affirm_v that_o all_o thing_n be_v ever_o to_o be_v do_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o church_n it_o matter_n not_o with_o they_o whether_o they_o be_v ordain_v or_o have_v any_o imposition_n of_o hand_n or_o no_o that_o be_v in_o their_o dialect_n but_o a_o compliment_n or_o a_o needless_a ceremony_n for_o so_o i_o have_v hear_v they_o speak_v the_o which_o ordination_n also_o though_o they_o say_v it_o belong_v unto_o officer_n notwithstanding_o the_o church_n and_o people_n make_v no_o scruple_n to_o exercise_v it_o at_o any_o time_n and_o to_o put_v it_o in_o execution_n if_o they_o think_v it_o fit_a as_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o new_a gather_v church_n daily_o teach_v all_o man_n yea_o we_o may_v gather_v as_o much_o out_o of_o i._o s._n his_o own_o expression_n that_o the_o power_n of_o ordination_n as_o well_o as_o of_o election_n reside_v in_o the_o people_n and_o lie_v in_o their_o hand_n who_o say_v that_o imposition_n of_o hand_n be_v proper_a to_o the_o officer_n where_o there_o be_v officer_n in_o a_o church_n constitute_v and_o complete_a intimate_v that_o if_o they_o have_v no_o church-officer_n they_o themselves_o may_v then_o ordain_v they_o and_o this_o be_v the_o practice_n of_o some_o of_o the_o church_n of_o the_o congregationall_a way_n by_o all_o which_o their_o language_n and_o proceed_n if_o by_o their_o distinction_n of_o power_n and_o interest_n they_o do_v not_o assume_v &_o arrogate_v all_o power_n to_o themselves_o and_o take_v it_o into_o their_o own_o hand_n and_o invest_v the_o people_n with_o plenary_a authority_n over_o all_o minister_n in_o church_n and_o state_n i_o know_v not_o what_o it_o be_v to_o confer_v authority_n on_o any_o people_n it_o be_v most_o notorious_o know_v that_o our_o independent_a gentleman_n will_v place_v all_o authority_n in_o the_o people_n and_o will_v have_v the_o magistrate_n and_o minister_n in_o church_n and_o state_n all_o dependent_a upon_o they_o and_o expect_v their_o election_n and_o ordination_n from_o they_o and_o they_o only_o will_v be_v independent_a and_o all_o this_o may_v be_v gather_v not_o only_o from_o their_o word_n and_o practice_n and_o out_o of_o all_o their_o pamphlet_n but_o even_o from_o i._o s._n his_o own_o distinction_n of_o power_n and_o interest_n which_o he_o say_v belong_v unto_o the_o people_n have_v thus_o from_o their_o own_o principle_n sufficient_o elucidate_v that_o by_o the_o independent_o doctrine_n and_o by_o their_o distinction_n of_o power_n and_o interest_n they_o assume_v all_o authority_n to_o themselves_o while_o they_o pretend_v they_o give_v authority_n and_o jurisdiction_n to_o the_o minister_n i_o will_v now_o set_v forth_o their_o wickedness_n in_o show_v how_o they_o rob_v christ_n of_o his_o honour_n and_o the_o apostle_n also_o and_o presbyter_n of_o jerusalem_n of_o their_o dignity_n and_o power_n as_o well_o as_o they_o do_v all_o other_o ordinary_a presbyter_n of_o their_o due_a honour_n and_o authority_n and_o i_o will_v first_o begin_v with_o their_o deal_n towards_o christ_n the_o king_n and_o lord_n of_o his_o church_n which_o be_v his_o kingdom_n all_o those_o that_o know_v how_o the_o kingdom_n and_o empire_n of_o the_o world_n a●e_v govern_v know_v that_o all_o their_o counsel_n ambassador_n judge_n ruler_n and_o officer_n under_o they_o either_o in_o the_o time_n of_o peace_n or_o war_n in_o all_o their_o act_n of_o government_n and_o in_o all_o their_o precept_n and_o mandate_n whether_o imparative_fw-it or_o prohibitive_n and_o in_o all_o their_o court_n of_o judicature_n transact_v and_o pass_v all_o thing_n with_o all_o their_o writ_n and_o summons_n in_o the_o
be_v exclude_v who_o be_v not_o at_o any_o time_n permit_v to_o vote_n in_o church_n 1_o cor._n 14._o and_o therefore_o the_o whole_a multitude_n of_o believer_n be_v not_o there_o for_o woman_n be_v part_n of_o the_o multitude_n neither_o be_v the_o weak_a brethren_n to_o be_v admit_v to_o doubtful_a disputation_n by_o a_o special_a command_n from_o the_o apostle_n paul_n rom._n 14._o v._n 1._o and_o this_o be_v accord_v to_o by_o the_o wise_a i._o s._n that_o confident_a disputant_n who_o say_v that_o the_o apostle_n and_o elder_n as_o a_o committee_n first_o prepare_v the_o dispute_n and_o after_o report_v it_o not_o count_v it_o safe_a to_o admit_v the_o weak_a to_o the_o same_o while_o it_o be_v intricate_a so_o that_o from_o saint_n paul_n doctrine_n there_o be_v neither_o woman_n nor_o weak_a brethren_n there_o and_o from_o i._o s._n his_o own_o concession_n the_o weak_a be_v not_o admit_v all_o the_o time_n of_o the_o dispute_n and_o therefore_o the_o whole_a multitude_n of_o believer_n that_o be_v in_o jerusalem_n be_v not_o in_o the_o council_n by_o all_o which_o it_o be_v apparent_o evident_a that_o by_o brethren_n and_o church_n and_o multitude_n there_o the_o whole_a company_n of_o believer_n in_o jerusalem_n can_v be_v understand_v and_o therefore_o by_o brethren_n multitude_n and_o the_o whole_a church_n we_o be_v necessary_o to_o understand_v the_o learned_a and_o godly_a prophet_n minister_n and_o member_n of_o that_o church_n chief_a and_o eminent_a one_o such_o as_o judas_n and_o sylas_n be_v and_o with_o they_o be_v to_o be_v join_v the_o other_o presbyter_n that_o come_v out_o of_o all_o the_o church_n of_o judea_n with_o those_o that_o come_v with_o paul_n and_o barnabas_n from_o antioch_n which_o be_v all_o consider_v together_o make_v up_o a_o great_a number_n and_o multitude_n all_o the_o which_o be_v call_v the_o church_n v._o 3._o the_o scripture_n there_o speak_v synecdochical_o and_o take_v a_o part_n for_o the_o whole_a i_o say_v of_o all_o such_o as_o these_o be_v do_v that_o synod_n consist_v and_o not_o of_o all_o sort_n of_o believer_n w_z ch_n be_v not_o member_n fit_a for_o a_o synod_n and_o council_n which_o be_v to_o be_v manage_v and_o order_v and_o consist_v of_o such_o man_n only_o as_o have_v receive_v the_o key_n and_o upon_o who_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n be_v lay_v which_o be_v never_o commit_v to_o the_o people_n much_o less_o to_o woman_n &_o therefore_o i_o say_v in_o all_o these_o respect_n by_o the_o brethren_n and_o multitude_n and_o the_o whole_a church_n we_o be_v to_o understand_v it_o synecdochical_o as_o before_o for_o all_o those_o that_o be_v in_o the_o council_n which_o be_v but_o a_o part_n of_o the_o whole_a for_o the_o eminent_a minister_n and_o prophet_n that_o be_v commissioner_n there_o and_o assistant_n to_o the_o apostle_n and_o elders_n he_o which_o yet_o be_v more_o evident_a from_o this_o reason_n that_o they_o only_o can_v be_v judge_n and_o voter_n in_o that_o synod_n which_o have_v hear_v the_o whole_a debate_n and_o the_o full_a dispute_n on_o both_o side_n for_o none_o can_v be_v judge_n in_o any_o cause_n to_o give_v righteous_a judgement_n that_o have_v not_o full_o hear_v the_o allegation_n and_o probation_n on_o both_o side_n which_o i._o s._n acknowledge_v the_o weak_a neither_o hear_v nor_o can_v judge_v of_o because_o they_o be_v intricate_a ergo_fw-la they_o can_v not_o be_v judge_n nor_o give_v their_o voice_n there_o upon_o no_o term_n for_o they_o can_v not_o be_v judge_n of_o thing_n they_o have_v not_o full_o &_o understand_o hear_v now_o the_o weak_a neither_o hear_v neither_o can_v they_o have_v understand_v if_o they_o have_v hear_v both_o which_o i._o s._n accord_v to_o and_o therefore_o by_o multitude_n and_o the_o whole_a church_n the_o weak_a brethren_n can_v be_v mean_v much_o less_o the_o sister_n and_o if_o man_n will_v but_o with_o deliberation_n weigh_v and_o consider_v of_o thing_n as_o they_o ought_v to_o be_v ponder_v and_o consider_v of_o very_a reason_n without_o the_o warrant_n of_o holy_a scripture_n will_v persuade_v every_o rational_a and_o well_o ground_a christian_n that_o none_o can_v or_o can_v be_v judge_n in_o any_o cause_n but_o such_o as_o have_v hear_v the_o plead_n of_o the_o whole_a business_n and_o controversy_n from_o the_o begin_n to_o the_o end_n which_o none_o but_o the_o apostle_n &_o presbyter_n and_o the_o commissioner_n and_o such_o as_o sylas_n and_o judas_n and_o barnabas_n be_v do_v for_o the_o scripture_n say_v verse_n 6._o that_o the_o apostle_n and_o elder_n come_v together_o for_o to_o consider_v of_o this_o matter_n and_o when_o there_o have_v be_v much_o dispute_v etc._n etc._n out_o of_o which_o word_n we_o may_v gather_v that_o none_o but_o they_o that_o manage_v the_o disputation_n and_o hear_v the_o whole_a debate_n be_v or_o can_v be_v judge_n which_o all_o the_o people_n neither_o do_v nor_o possible_o can_v do_v neither_o may_v we_o conceive_v of_o the_o council_n of_o jerusalem_n that_o they_o have_v any_o raw_a head_a boy_n or_o giddy_a brain_a creature_n or_o minor_n in_o it_o or_o any_o such_o as_o be_v ever_o run_v out_o and_o in_o for_o we_o may_v not_o imagine_v that_o that_o great_a council_n be_v like_o a_o pigeon_n house_n where_o they_o be_v continual_o flutter_v out_o and_o flutter_v in_o for_o that_o council_n consist_v of_o such_o man_n only_o as_o be_v holy_a grave_a and_o approve_v all_o prophet_n such_o as_o sylas_n judas_n and_o barnabas_n be_v such_o as_o for_o gravity_n and_o experience_n be_v think_v fit_a companion_n to_o sit_v with_o the_o apostle_n and_o elder_n in_o consultation_n so_o that_o it_o be_v apparent_o evident_a that_o council_n consist_v of_o none_o but_o venerable_a precious_a godly_a and_o staid_a man_n of_o who_o we_o can_v not_o by_o the_o law_n of_o charity_n think_v that_o they_o do_v the_o work_n of_o the_o lord_n in_o that_o synod_n negligent_o or_o to_o the_o half_n or_o that_o they_o do_v not_o all_o sit_v close_o and_o diligent_o to_o the_o work_n from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o session_n to_o the_o conclusion_n of_o the_o same_o and_o therefore_o that_o as_o they_o meet_v altogether_o at_o a_o set_a hour_n or_o time_n so_o that_o they_o continue_v and_o keep_v together_o in_o consultation_n and_o dispute_n as_o long_o as_o any_o other_o sit_v and_o till_o they_o in_o their_o wisdom_n by_o their_o joint_a consent_n and_o agreement_n think_v fit_a to_o sit_v to_o the_o full_a determination_n of_o the_o whole_a business_n and_o till_o the_o decree_n be_v make_v be_v it_o few_o or_o more_o day_n or_o week_n and_o although_o it_o be_v not_o record_v how_o long_o the_o council_n continue_v yet_o we_o read_v not_o where_o in_o the_o 15._o chapter_n but_o that_o they_o sit_v altogether_o in_o judgement_n the_o apostle_n and_o elder_n and_o commissioner_n till_o they_o have_v hear_v the_o whole_a debate_n and_o dispute_v and_o none_o but_o they_o this_o truth_n may_v be_v gather_v not_o only_o from_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o from_o that_o i_o have_v former_o speak_v but_o from_o i._o s._n his_o own_o word_n above_o specify_v viz_o that_o there_o be_v neither_o weak_a brethren_n nor_o the_o sister_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v a_o great_a wickedness_n in_o i._n s._n from_o such_o uncertainty_n as_o he_o go_v upon_o to_o raise_v and_o make_v such_o conclusion_n as_o he_o do_v which_o tend_v to_o no_o other_o end_n but_o for_o the_o take_v away_o all_o the_o authority_n and_o power_n from_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o which_o god_n notwithstanding_o have_v invest_v they_o with_o and_o to_o put_v it_o into_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o people_n which_o they_o have_v nothing_o to_o do_v with_o for_o as_o his_o word_n declare_v he_o account_v the_o apostle_n and_o elder_n but_o a_o committee_n only_o to_o prepare_v the_o dispute_n and_o then_o to_o report_v it_o that_o they_o may_v have_v the_o assistance_n and_o concurrence_n of_o the_o people_n without_o the_o which_o as_o he_o affirm_v there_o be_v no_o great_a commendation_n of_o the_o resolution_n that_o be_v to_o say_v if_o the_o people_n have_v not_o assent_v unto_o the_o decree_n they_o have_v be_v of_o no_o effect_n which_o if_o it_o be_v not_o whole_o to_o divest_v the_o apostle_n of_o all_o power_n and_o authority_n and_o lay_v it_o and_o place_n it_o upon_o the_o people_n i_o leave_v it_o to_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o learned_a than_o the_o which_o there_o can_v be_v a_o great_a sacrilege_n and_o injustice_n perpetrate_v against_o minister_n and_o servant_n of_o god_n in_o the_o world_n by_o any_o and_o as_o this_o deal_n and_o proceed_v of_o i._o s._n be_v most_o injurious_a to_o the_o apostle_n so_o this_o his_o doctrine_n be_v contrary_a to_o all_o divine_a
of_o their_o conversion_n or_o that_o they_o shall_v enter_v into_o a_o particular_a explicit_a covenant_n or_o that_o they_o shall_v have_v the_o consent_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n nothing_o of_o all_o this_o be_v require_v there_o neither_o have_v the_o people_n any_o hand_n in_o the_o admit_v of_o they_o but_o the_o apostle_n by_o themselves_o and_o by_o their_o sole_a authority_n manage_v the_o whole_a business_n for_o those_o that_o be_v convert_v and_o prick_v in_o their_o heart_n apply_v themselves_o unto_o the_o apostle_n say_v man_n and_o brethren_n what_o shall_v we_o do_v and_o the_o condition_n upon_o which_o they_o admit_v they_o upon_o their_o repentance_n be_v these_o only_o believe_v and_o be_v baptize_v in_o the_o name_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n the_o bless_a apostle_n be_v not_o acquaint_v with_o our_o new_a model_n nor_o with_o the_o condition_n of_o the_o new_a congregation_n but_o by_o the_o way_n let_v i_o tell_v the_o illdependents_n that_o the_o apostle_n and_o disciple_n have_v then_o a_o just_a ground_n of_o make_v such_o condition_n if_o ever_o any_o have_v for_o they_o may_v with_o great_a reason_n have_v say_v howsoever_o these_o soul_n be_v not_o miracle_n proof_n but_o that_o they_o be_v wound_v to_o the_o heart_n by_o they_o and_o by_o the_o sermon_n of_o peter_n yet_o we_o be_v not_o by_o and_o by_o to_o confide_v in_o they_o and_o to_o admit_v they_o into_o church_n fellowship_n unless_o they_o will_v walk_v some_o time_n with_o we_o that_o we_o may_v have_v experience_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o their_o conversion_n and_o unless_o also_o they_o will_v make_v all_o and_o every_o one_o of_o they_o a_o public_a and_o particular_a confession_n of_o his_o faith_n and_o bring_v in_o the_o evidence_n of_o their_o conversion_n and_o enter_v also_o into_o a_o particular_a explicit_a covenant_n for_o observe_v all_o the_o law_n of_o membership_n and_o that_o they_o come_v in_o by_o the_o general_a consent_n and_o approbation_n of_o the_o church_n i_o say_v if_o ever_o there_o be_v a_o time_n that_o these_o condition_n may_v have_v be_v require_v by_o any_o it_o may_v then_o especial_o have_v be_v because_o all_o those_o have_v have_v their_o hand_n in_o crucify_a of_o the_o lord_n of_o life_n as_o peter_n tell_v they_o and_o therefore_o they_o may_v all_o be_v well_o suspect_v that_o howsoever_o for_o the_o present_a they_o be_v all_o strike_v into_o a_o tremble_a condition_n yet_o that_o they_o can_v not_o judge_v upon_o so_o short_a a_o time_n of_o the_o soundness_n of_o their_o conversion_n and_o therefore_o they_o may_v well_o have_v urge_v all_o the_o former_a condition_n and_o chief_o because_o they_o have_v our_o saviour_n own_o example_n fresh_o before_o their_o eye_n in_o the_o second_o of_o john_n where_o it_o be_v relate_v that_o he_o will_v not_o commit_v himself_o unto_o man_n which_o have_v be_v convince_v by_o his_o miracle_n although_o they_o believe_v in_o he_o so_o that_o i_o say_v in_o that_o regard_n when_o christ_n will_v not_o commit_v himself_o unto_o they_o the_o apostle_n and_o disciple_n may_v much_o more_o have_v pretend_v in_o all_o these_o regard_n that_o they_o have_v no_o reason_n to_o confide_v in_o these_o man_n until_o they_o have_v have_v better_a experience_n of_o they_o for_o the_o truth_n of_o their_o conversion_n but_o when_o neither_o the_o apostle_n nor_o none_o of_o all_o the_o disciple_n so_o much_o as_o urge_v any_o condition_n upon_o they_o beyond_o the_o commission_n give_v they_o by_o christ_n to_o wit_n repentance_n faith_n and_o baptism_n the_o example_n of_o this_o church_n be_v for_o ever_o bind_v to_o all_o church_n that_o they_o in_o the_o admission_n of_o their_o member_n shall_v do_v the_o same_o and_o they_o that_o propound_v other_o condition_n do_v no_o less_o then_o accuse_v the_o apostle_n of_o injustice_n and_o imprudency_n as_o of_o take_v that_o authority_n into_o their_o own_o hand_n from_o the_o people_n and_o of_o so_o sudden_o and_o without_o any_o deliberation_n admit_v of_o member_n into_o church-fellowship_n which_o ought_v according_a to_o my_o brother_n burtons_n doctrine_n ever_o to_o be_v do_v with_o great_a caution_n who_o say_v in_o his_o 14._o page_n multa_fw-la cautela_fw-la non_fw-la nocet_fw-la add_v moreover_o that_o in_o thing_n weighty_a we_o can_v be_v too_o wary_a in_o regard_n they_o look_v not_o so_o much_o at_o circumstance_n in_o conversion_n as_o the_o substance_n and_o in_o regard_n also_o there_o ought_v to_o be_v a_o provident_a care_n for_o prevent_a inconvenience_n and_o scandal_n see_v turpius_fw-la ejici●ur_fw-la quam_fw-la non_fw-la admittitur_fw-la hospes_fw-la it_o be_v easy_a for_o a_o guest_n to_o be_v keep_v out_o then_o to_o be_v cast_v out_o by_o all_o which_o his_o expression_n and_o by_o their_o daily_a practice_n they_o do_v no_o less_o then_o proclaim_v unto_o the_o world_n that_o the_o apostle_n take_v too_o much_o upon_o they_o and_o be_v not_o so_o prudent_a in_o the_o admission_n of_o member_n into_o church-fellowship_n and_o communion_n as_o they_o shall_v have_v be_v for_o if_o they_o do_v not_o accuse_v the_o practice_n of_o all_o the_o apostle_n of_o deficiency_n why_o do_v they_o not_o follow_v their_o example_n and_o why_o do_v they_o impose_v new_a law_n of_o admit_v of_o member_n and_o other_o condition_n then_o either_o christ_n the_o king_n of_o his_o church_n god_n bless_v for_o ever_o or_o his_o holy_a apostle_n do_v which_o whether_o or_o no_o it_o be_v not_o one_o of_o the_o presumptuous_a and_o blasphemous_a wickedness_n both_o in_o the_o minister_n and_o the_o people_n that_o exercise_n this_o new_a government_n that_o ever_o be_v in_o the_o world_n i_o leave_v it_o to_o the_o judgement_n of_o all_o conscientious_a and_o solid_a christian_n this_o one_o example_n in_o the_o church_n of_o jerusalem_n may_v be_v a_o sufficient_a precedent_n for_o all_o church_n imitation_n for_o ordinary_a admission_n of_o member_n into_o church-fellowship_n but_o i_o will_v produce_v other_o admission_n in_o the_o same_o church_n that_o there_o may_v be_v no_o want_n of_o witness_n to_o corroborate_v this_o truth_n in_o the_o last_o verse_n of_o the_o second_o chapter_n beside_o this_o first_o admission_n in_o terminis_fw-la it_o be_v say_v there_o that_o the_o lord_n add_v daily_o unto_o the_o church_n such_o as_o shall_v be_v save_v here_o we_o find_v addition_n of_o member_n upon_o addition_n for_o they_o be_v daily_o add_v say_v the_o scripture_n and_o that_o by_o the_o lord_n and_o king_n of_o his_o church_n jesus_n christ_n and_o that_o upon_o the_o former_a condition_n for_o we_o learn_v of_o no_o other_o viz._n of_o repent_v believe_a and_o be_v baptize_v here_o we_o find_v nothing_o of_o walk_v sometime_o before_o their_o admission_n here_o be_v nothing_o of_o public_a confession_n of_o their_o faith_n nothing_o of_o bring_v in_o of_o the_o evidence_n of_o their_o conversion_n nothing_o of_o a_o particular_a explicit_a covenant_n nothing_o of_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o church_n the_o lord_n jesus_n while_o the_o government_n of_o his_o church_n who_o yoke_n be_v easy_a and_o his_o burden_n light_n lay_v upon_o his_o shoulder_n and_o as_o long_o as_o the_o rule_n lie_v in_o his_o own_o hand_n and_o before_o it_o come_v to_o my_o brother_n burtons_n fine_a white_a finger_n which_o he_o say_v in_o his_o learned_a epistle_n that_o some_o of_o his_o friend_n will_v not_o have_v he_o foul_a with_o i_o i_o say_v while_o the_o government_n of_o christ_n church_n lie_v in_o his_o own_o hand_n and_o before_o it_o come_v to_o my_o brother_n burtons_n finger_n and_o into_o the_o paw_n and_o clutch_n of_o those_o of_o the_o congregationall_a way_n all_o christ_n disciple_n and_o precious_a one_o be_v admit_v into_o church-fellowship_n without_o that_o heavy_a burden_n of_o those_o condition_n they_o have_v most_o arrogant_o bring_v into_o the_o church_n of_o god_n by_o which_o in_o as_o much_o as_o in_o they_o lie_v they_o have_v not_o only_o put_v the_o whole_a world_n in_o a_o combustion_n but_o most_o blasphemous_o this_fw-mi throne_a christ_n prefer_v their_o own_o vain_a tradition_n before_o his_o most_o holy_a law_n and_o do_v all_o in_o the_o church_n name_n and_o enslave_v his_o people_n while_o notwithstanding_o they_o pretend_v they_o set_v up_o christ_n upon_o his_o throne_n and_o they_o preach_v the_o liberty_n of_o the_o gospel_n unto_o the_o people_n which_o be_v most_o impious_o to_o juggle_v on_o all_o side_n but_o now_o to_o go_v on_o to_o the_o other_o precedent_n of_o admit_v member_n in_o that_o church_n in_o the_o four_o chapter_n we_o have_v it_o record_v verse_n 4._o that_o many_o of_o they_o which_o hear_v the_o word_n believe_v and_o the_o number_n of_o the_o man_n be_v about_o five_o thousand_o and_o all_o these_o be_v admit_v into_o church_n fellowship_n and_o into_o the_o communion_n
their_o own_o and_o therefore_o if_o the_o name_n of_o presbyter_n be_v odious_a in_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n no_o reason_n can_v gainsay_v it_o but_o that_o they_o also_o shall_v be_v as_o odious_a to_o the_o people_n as_o their_o brethren_n for_o they_o also_o be_v presbyterian_o but_o that_o the_o truth_n may_v the_o better_o appear_v whether_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n or_o the_o independent_a minister_n be_v most_o guilty_a of_o all_o the_o accusation_n lay_v to_o their_o charge_n it_o will_v not_o be_v a_o miss_n to_o compare_v the_o practice_n of_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o the_o proceed_n of_o the_o independent_a minister_n together_o and_o that_o both_o for_o their_o doctrine_n and_o discipline_n and_o in_o their_o several_a study_n and_o endeavour_n for_o the_o advance_n of_o christ_n kingdom_n and_o by_o so_o do_v it_o will_v be_v easy_a for_o any_o to_o judge_v which_o of_o their_o government_n and_o which_o of_o the_o minister_n be_v more_o intolerable_a and_o which_o of_o they_o be_v most_o guilty_a of_o those_o foul_a reproach_n the_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n be_v asperse_v with_o by_o their_o brethren_n for_o he_o have_v a_o shallow_a understanding_n and_o a_o very_a dim_a sight_n that_o can_v discern_v whether_o those_o that_o advance_v christ_n their_o king_n word_n and_o law_n only_o and_o follow_v his_o commission_n and_o the_o example_n of_o the_o holy_a apostle_n in_o their_o ministery_n and_o that_o of_o john_n baptist_n and_o the_o primitive_a preacher_n or_o those_o that_o set_v up_o their_o own_o invention_n and_o prefer_v they_o before_o the_o law_n of_o christ_n and_o have_v neither_o precept_n nor_o precedent_n for_o their_o do_n in_o all_o the_o holy_a word_n of_o god_n he_o i_o say_v that_o can_v judge_v which_o of_o these_o most_o advance_v christ_n for_o their_o king_n either_o those_o that_o obey_v christ_n law_n or_o those_o that_o observe_v their_o own_o neglect_v christ_n be_v of_o a_o very_a shallow_a capacity_n but_o now_o let_v we_o compare_v they_o together_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n preach_v faith_n and_o repentance_n the_o law_n and_o the_o gospel_n according_a to_o christ_n commission_n give_v to_o his_o apostle_n and_o they_o receive_v all_o into_o the_o church_n that_o believe_v and_o be_v baptize_v and_o such_o as_o but_o desire_n to_o be_v admit_v they_o demand_v of_o they_o what_o they_o shall_v do_v to_o be_v save_v and_o in_o their_o so_o do_v they_o have_v both_o precept_n and_o precedent_n for_o christ_n in_o his_o commission_n unto_o they_o have_v give_v they_o authority_n so_o to_o do_v neither_o do_v he_o ever_o say_v unto_o his_o apostle_n and_o minister_n admit_v none_o into_o the_o church_n although_o they_o believe_v and_o be_v baptize_v without_o they_o walk_v with_o you_o some_o day_n week_n month_n or_o year_n that_o you_o may_v behold_v their_o conversation_n and_o manner_n of_o life_n and_o after_o you_o have_v have_v some_o trial_n and_o experience_n of_o they_o see_v then_o that_o they_o make_v a_o public_a confession_n of_o their_o faith_n before_o the_o church_n and_o give_v in_o the_o evidence_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o their_o conversion_n before_o the_o congregation_n and_o enter_v into_o a_o private_a and_o solemn_a covenant_n and_o be_v admit_v by_o the_o consent_n and_o approbation_n of_o the_o church_n or_o otherwise_o if_o they_o will_v not_o submit_v themselves_o to_o this_o law_n and_o come_v into_o the_o church_n upon_o these_o condition_n receive_v they_o not_o into_o your_o assembly_n nor_o admit_v of_o they_o for_o member_n here_o be_v nothing_o of_o all_o this_o in_o christ_n commission_n nor_o in_o his_o holy_a word_n nor_o any_o precedent_n of_o the_o same_o in_o sacred_a authority_n and_o therefore_o john_n the_o baptist_n and_o the_o holy_a apostle_n and_o primitive_a minister_n admit_v all_o that_o come_v unto_o they_o and_o such_o as_o but_o demand_v of_o they_o what_o they_o shall_v do_v to_o be_v save_v and_o baptize_v they_o and_o receive_v they_o into_o the_o church_n without_o any_o gainsay_n or_o question_n as_o we_o may_v see_v in_o the_o three_o of_o luke_n and_o in_o the_o seven_o chapter_n of_o the_o same_o book_n and_o in_o the_o second_o of_o the_o act_n and_o no_o soon_o do_v the_o eunuch_n desire_v baptism_n but_o philip_n grant_v it_o the_o gaoler_n do_v but_o ask_v paul_n and_o sylas_n what_o they_o shall_v do_v to_o be_v save_v and_o they_o say_v believe_v on_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n and_o thou_o shall_v be_v save_v and_o thy_o house_n and_o it_o be_v relate_v that_o the_o gaoler_n and_o all_o his_o be_v straight_o way_n baptize_v act_v 16._o vers_fw-la 31_o 32_o 33._o that_o be_v they_o be_v forthwith_o admit_v into_o the_o church_n without_o either_o walk_v any_o time_n with_o the_o church_n for_o their_o approbation_n or_o without_o either_o make_v a_o public_a confession_n of_o their_o faith_n before_o the_o church_n or_o give_v in_o evidence_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o their_o conversion_n to_o the_o congregation_n or_o enter_v into_o a_o private_a covenant_n and_o without_o the_o consent_n and_o allowance_n of_o the_o church_n and_o christ_n notwithstanding_o be_v embrace_v by_o they_o as_o their_o lord_n and_o king_n and_o be_v preach_v by_o paul_n and_o silas_n as_o the_o lord_n and_o king_n of_o his_o church_n and_o be_v set_v up_o upon_o his_o throne_n as_o king_n by_o they_o as_o well_o as_o he_o be_v in_o any_o independent_a church_n and_o yet_o they_o have_v none_o of_o all_o their_o new_a bear_a truth_n and_o they_o can_v then_o see_v how_o to_o set_v up_o christ_n upon_o his_o throne_n without_o their_o new_a light_n and_o as_o christ_n be_v then_o by_o paul_n and_o silas_n and_o the_o other_o apostle_n set_v upon_o his_o throne_n as_o king_n in_o all_o those_o primitive_a church_n so_o he_o be_v at_o this_o day_n in_o all_o the_o true_a protestant_a church_n through_o the_o world_n as_o well_o as_o in_o any_o of_o the_o independent_a assembly_n and_o yet_o they_o be_v and_o be_v all_o ignorant_a of_o their_o new_a way_n so_o that_o any_o understanding_n christian_n may_v gather_v that_o all_o their_o new_a bear_a truth_n be_v no_o way_n requisite_a for_o the_o set_n up_o of_o christ_n as_o king_n in_o his_o church_n nor_o for_o the_o advancement_n of_o christ_n kingly_a government_n for_o if_o they_o have_v christ_n will_v have_v put_v they_o into_o the_o apostle_n commission_n and_o the_o apostle_n who_o be_v lead_v into_o all_o truth_n by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n who_o bring_v whatsoever_o christ_n have_v teach_v they_o concern_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n act._n 1._o into_o their_o memory_n will_v have_v suggest_v all_o these_o thing_n the_o new_a way_n the_o new_a bear_v truth_n the_o new_a light_n to_o they_o that_o they_o may_v have_v be_v record_v if_o they_o have_v be_v necessary_a for_o the_o set_n up_o of_o christ_n upon_o his_o throne_n but_o when_o neither_o christ_n nor_o the_o holy_a ghost_n nor_o the_o bless_a apostle_n have_v prescribe_v any_o of_o all_o these_o to_o the_o church_n nor_o call_v for_o they_o nor_o require_v they_o of_o any_o that_o desire_v to_o be_v save_v or_o make_v member_n of_o the_o church_n whether_o this_o be_v not_o a_o great_a temerity_n in_o any_o man_n to_o preach_v all_o these_o thing_n as_o the_o law_n of_o christ_n i_o leave_v it_o to_o the_o judgement_n of_o any_o ingenuous_a mind_a christian_n and_o whether_o this_o be_v not_o to_o prefer_v their_o own_o invention_n and_o tradition_n before_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n and_o the_o law_n of_o christ_n the_o king_n of_o his_o church_n and_o whether_o this_o be_v not_o rather_o to_o set_v up_o themselves_o than_o christ_n i_o refer_v it_o also_o to_o any_o judicious_a and_o impartial_a christian_n to_o weigh_v and_o consider_v i_o shall_v now_o demand_v of_o any_o moderate_a christian_n therefore_o and_o let_v he_o answer_v i_o candid_o whether_o of_o those_o minister_n and_o people_n most_o advance_v the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n and_o acknowledge_v he_o to_o be_v their_o only_a lord_n and_o lawgiver_n that_o both_o in_o their_o teach_n and_o believe_v follow_v his_o commission_n and_o word_n and_o teach_v nothing_o nor_o believe_v nothing_o as_o they_o be_v enjoin_v but_o what_o christ_n their_o king_n command_v they_o or_o those_o that_o to_o the_o commission_n and_o command_n of_o christ_n add_v their_o own_o invention_n and_o tradition_n and_o prefer_v they_o before_o the_o law_n of_o christ_n the_o king_n and_o law_n giver_n of_o his_o church_n i_o be_o confident_a if_o he_o will_v deal_v impartial_o he_o will_v answer_v i_o that_o those_o minister_n and_o that_o people_n most_o advance_v christ_n for_o their_o king_n
consider_v what_o those_o false_a teacher_n be_v we_o shall_v find_v they_o to_o be_v no_o other_o but_o such_o as_o under_o show_n of_o holiness_n and_o piety_n teach_v their_o own_o invention_n and_o grollery_n and_o abuse_v the_o simplicity_n of_o the_o people_n for_o their_o own_o advantage_n and_o bring_v they_o into_o bondage_n and_o devour_v they_o verse_n 20._o as_o the_o phatisee_n do_v the_o widow_n house_n under_o pretence_n of_o their_o long_a prayer_n which_o our_o saviour_n christ_n sharp_o reprove_v they_o for_o and_o denounce_v a_o woe_n against_o they_o for_o their_o so_o do_v after_o the_o same_o manner_n do_v these_o false_a teacher_n among_o the_o corinthian_n who_o make_v their_o own_o tradition_n join_v member_n with_o the_o gospel_n as_o if_o they_o have_v have_v a_o more_o fine_a neat_a &_o eleganter_fw-la way_n of_o gather_v of_o church_n and_o admit_v of_o member_n than_o paul_n and_o the_o other_o apostle_n but_o the_o apostle_n bid_v the_o corinthian_n take_v heed_n of_o all_o such_o how_o glorious_a soever_o they_o seem_v to_o appear_v and_o tell_v they_o they_o can_v teach_v the_o way_n to_o heaven_n and_o happiness_n better_o than_o he_o and_o the_o other_o apostle_n have_v do_v and_o yet_o neither_o saint_n paul_n or_o any_o of_o the_o apostle_n in_o preach_v of_o the_o gospel_n teach_v they_o that_o they_o shall_v admit_v of_o none_o to_o be_v join_v member_n of_o the_o church_n although_o they_o believe_v and_o be_v baptize_v except_o they_o walk_v sometime_o in_o fellowship_n among_o they_o that_o they_o may_v have_v approbation_n and_o trial_n of_o their_o conversation_n first_o and_o after_o make_v a_o public_a confession_n of_o their_o faith_n before_o the_o church_n and_o do_v give_v in_o evidence_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o their_o conversion_n to_o the_o congregation_n and_o enter_v into_o a_o solemn_a private_a covenant_n and_o be_v admit_v member_n by_o consent_n of_o the_o church_n not_o a_o word_n of_o all_o this_o in_o the_o gospel_n that_o saint_n paul_n and_o the_o other_o apostle_n teach_v and_o therefore_o all_o that_o teach_v their_o new_a way_n their_o newborn_a truth_n and_o set_v up_o their_o new_a light_n be_v wise_a above_o that_o which_o be_v write_v and_o teach_v otherwise_o than_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n have_v teach_v or_o the_o christian_n of_o the_o primitive_a time_n have_v receive_v and_o therefore_o ought_v by_o the_o apostle_n command_v gal._n 1._o verse_n 8._o 9_o to_o be_v accurse_v saint_n john_n also_o in_o his_o second_o epistle_n to_o the_o elect_a lady_n verse_n 9_o 10._o say_v whosoever_o transgress_v and_o abide_v not_o in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n have_v not_o god_n he_o that_o continue_v in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n he_o have_v both_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n if_o there_o come_v any_o unto_o you_o that_o bring_v not_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n receive_v he_o not_o into_o your_o house_n neither_o bid_v he_o god_n speed_n for_o he_o that_o bid_v he_o god_n speed_n be_v a_o partaker_n of_o his_o evil_a deed_n now_o the_o doctrine_n that_o the_o independent_a minister_n teach_v for_o the_o gather_n of_o church_n and_o admit_v of_o member_n and_o join_v and_o jumble_v of_o they_o together_o be_v never_o teach_v by_o christ_n nor_o any_o of_o his_o apostle_n for_o they_o themselves_o confess_v it_o be_v a_o new_a way_n and_o a_o new_a borne_n truth_n and_o a_o new_a light_n and_o therefore_o not_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n and_o therefore_o such_o novelty_n be_v not_o to_o be_v entertain_v nor_o embrace_v nor_o the_o teacher_n of_o they_o if_o we_o will_v be_v obedient_a to_o apostolical_a precept_n i_o desire_v therefore_o those_o of_o the_o independent_a brethren_n to_o produce_v any_o one_o testimony_n or_o any_o one_o precedent_n out_o of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n where_o these_o thing_n follow_v be_v teach_v or_o have_v be_v practise_v first_o that_o although_o man_n and_o woman_n believe_v and_o be_v baptize_v they_o be_v not_o yet_o to_o be_v admit_v as_o join_v member_n till_o they_o have_v walk_v sometime_o in_o fellowship_n with_o the_o church_n for_o approbation_n of_o their_o conversation_n this_o be_v the_o first_o thing_n i_o desire_v of_o the_o brethren_n either_o a_o precept_n or_o a_o example_n for_o this_o in_o god_n word_n the_o second_o where_o it_o be_v command_v that_o those_o that_o believe_v and_o be_v baptize_v shall_v not_o be_v admit_v as_o member_n of_o the_o church_n without_o a_o public_a confession_n of_o their_o faith_n before_o the_o church_n the_o three_o where_o it_o be_v enjoin_v that_o to_o their_o faith_n and_o baptism_n they_o shall_v bring_v in_o the_o evidence_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o their_o conversion_n before_o they_o can_v be_v capable_a of_o their_o membership_n the_o four_o where_o it_o be_v command_v that_o they_o shall_v enter_v into_o a_o solemn_a and_o private_a covenant_n before_o they_o can_v be_v admit_v to_o church-fellowship_n the_o five_o where_o it_o be_v impose_v upon_o those_o that_o believe_v and_o be_v baptize_v that_o they_o shall_v not_o be_v receive_v into_o the_o church_n without_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o congregation_n six_o where_o it_o be_v command_v that_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n shall_v run_v about_o from_o their_o own_o place_n and_o charge_n into_o the_o sheepfold_n of_o their_o fellow-shepherd_n and_o separate_v and_o pick_v out_o all_o their_o best_a sheep_n and_o bring_v they_o into_o their_o own_o fold_n and_o debar_v they_o from_o all_o church-fellowship_n and_o communicate_v with_o the_o other_o believer_n in_o god_n holy_a ordinance_n and_o sacrament_n or_o where_o ever_o it_o be_v command_v that_o the_o preacher_n of_o the_o gospel_n shall_v gather_v believe_a christian_n from_o among_o believe_a christian_n and_o separate_v they_o from_o the_o other_o sheep_n into_o independent_a congregation_n and_o shall_v proclaim_v all_o that_o be_v not_o thus_o mould_v up_o after_o this_o new_a model_n to_o be_v people_n out_o of_o covenant_n and_o to_o have_v no_o right_n to_o the_o seal_n of_o the_o new_a covenant_n neither_o they_o nor_o their_o child_n though_o believer_n all_o these_o thing_n i_o desire_v the_o brethren_n by_o evident_a place_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n to_o make_v good_a and_o to_o confirm_v or_o by_o any_o precedent_n or_o example_n to_o declare_v to_o have_v be_v practise_v either_o by_o christ_n or_o his_o bless_a apostle_n for_o i_o look_v for_o a_o law_n from_o christ_n the_o king_n of_o his_o church_n who_o be_v as_o faithful_a in_o the_o house_n of_o god_n as_o moses_n be_v and_o have_v not_o leave_v the_o order_n and_o dispose_n of_o his_o church_n to_o the_o will_n of_o man_n but_o have_v command_v the_o church_n to_o hear_v his_o voice_n who_o be_v the_o great_a pastor_n and_o bishop_n of_o our_o soul_n and_o the_o teacher_n of_o his_o church_n his_o word_n therefore_o i_o look_v for_o for_o a_o warrant_n for_o the_o ratify_n of_o all_o these_o doctrine_n and_o i_o have_v good_a ground_n and_o reason_n to_o demand_v of_o they_o a_o warrant_n and_o authority_n out_o of_o god_n word_n for_o what_o they_o both_o teach_v and_o practice_n for_o we_o be_v teach_v by_o christ_n the_o only_a prophet_n of_o his_o church_n that_o they_o that_o serve_v god_n after_o the_o precept_n of_o man_n offer_v he_o a_o vain_a worship_n and_o it_o stand_v with_o all_o good_a reason_n that_o if_o all_o humane_a tradition_n though_o of_o never_o so_o ancient_a stand_n and_o of_o never_o so_o long_a antiquity_n be_v all_o cast_v out_o of_o the_o church_n because_o they_o have_v no_o footing_n or_o ground_n in_o god_n word_n that_o all_o novelty_n or_o new_a invention_n of_o man_n which_o notwithstanding_o be_v impose_v upon_o the_o people_n as_o the_o way_n of_o god_n shall_v be_v abrogate_a and_o nullify_v and_o cast_v out_o of_o the_o church_n it_o be_v record_v in_o holy_a writ_n joshua_n 9_o that_o the_o gibeonite_n deceive_v joshua_n and_o the_o people_n of_o israel_n under_o pretence_n that_o they_o come_v from_o a_o far_a country_n and_o for_o proof_n of_o that_o they_o produce_v their_o mouldy_a bread_n and_o their_o totter_a bottle_n and_o their_o old_a shoe_n and_o they_o take_v what_o they_o say_v pro_fw-la confess_v and_o not_o consult_v with_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o lord_n as_o it_o be_v full_o relate_v in_o that_o chapter_n be_v deceive_v by_o they_o and_o enter_v into_o a_o league_n with_o their_o enemy_n and_o thus_o the_o papist_n and_o prelate_n for_o these_o many_o hundred_o year_n have_v delude_v the_o world_n under_o pretence_n of_o their_o mouldy_a antiquity_n and_o totter_a rag_n of_o tradition_n and_o in_o all_o this_o time_n they_o prevail_v to_o mislead_v the_o poor_a people_n because_o they_o consult_v not_o with_o the_o mouth_n of_o god_n nor_o examine_v thing_n
once_o deliver_v to_o the_o saint_n and_o against_o the_o way_n of_o man_n and_o such_o as_o be_v bring_v into_o the_o church_n by_o the_o cunning_a craftiness_n of_o some_o and_o thrust_v upon_o the_o people_n as_o the_o law_n and_o ordinance_n and_o way_n of_o god_n when_o they_o be_v but_o their_o own_o invention_n and_o tend_v to_o no_o edification_n but_o to_o the_o trouble_n and_o disturbance_n of_o church_n and_o state_n and_o such_o as_o already_o have_v bring_v a_o confusion_n upon_o we_o all_o and_o if_o the_o lord_n do_v not_o speedy_o from_o heaven_n send_v his_o help_a hand_n we_o can_v expect_v nothing_o but_o desolation_n and_o all_o from_o these_o division_n that_o their_o new_a way_n have_v bring_v in_o and_o therefore_o it_o be_v high_a time_n for_o all_o good_a christian_n and_o such_o as_o love_v the_o peace_n of_o zion_n more_o exact_o to_o examine_v all_o these_o new_a way_n and_o to_o put_v they_o upon_o the_o proof_n of_o they_o but_o that_o the_o brethren_n shall_v complain_v of_o persecution_n among_o we_o and_o of_o evil_a usage_n it_o be_v against_o all_o reason_n and_o humanity_n and_o show_v little_a gratitude_n in_o they_o to_o all_o the_o christian_n both_o through_o city_n and_o country_n for_o if_o they_o remember_v when_o they_o come_v over_o though_o they_o have_v desert_v the_o cause_n when_o they_o have_v most_o need_n of_o they_o they_o be_v more_o honour_v than_o any_o of_o those_o famous_a and_o learned_a minister_n that_o have_v undergo_v the_o labour_n and_o heat_n of_o the_o day_n and_o they_o be_v prefer_v before_o they_o all_o and_o settle_v in_o the_o prime_a lecture_n of_o the_o kingdom_n and_o have_v more_o honourable_a maintenance_n than_o be_v usual_o give_v to_o any_o lecturer_n before_o they_o and_o therefore_o they_o deal_v not_o brotherly_a in_o any_o of_o all_o their_o proceed_n nor_o humane_o so_o to_o asperse_v they_o as_o they_o ordinary_o do_v both_o public_o and_o private_o i_o be_o confident_a there_o be_v not_o such_o a_o precedent_n in_o the_o world_n of_o humanity_n as_o that_o show_v here_o to_o they_o it_o be_v well_o know_v and_o their_o book_n &_o practice_n declare_v it_o that_o they_o preach_v new_a way_n newborn_a truth_n as_o they_o call_v they_o and_o set_v up_o new_a light_n now_o where_o be_v it_o ever_o hear_v of_o either_o in_o the_o christian_a or_o pagan_a world_n that_o it_o be_v ever_o permit_v unto_o any_o minister_n or_o preacher_n to_o have_v all_o the_o pulpit_n in_o any_o nation_n to_o preach_v a_o diverse_a doctrine_n to_o that_o which_o be_v set_v up_o by_o authority_n and_o such_o as_o tend_v to_o make_v a_o faction_n and_o division_n among_o the_o people_n i_o do_v most_o assure_o believe_v that_o there_o can_v the_o like_a precedent_n be_v produce_v among_o the_o heathen_a the_o jewish_a religion_n in_o many_o country_n be_v tolerate_v but_o they_o be_v confine_v to_o their_o own_o synagogue_n they_o may_v not_o come_v in_o the_o heathen_n pulpit_n to_o preach_v up_o the_o jewish_a worship_n among_o they_o or_o to_o set_v up_o another_o service_n contrary_a to_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o nation_n it_o be_v a_o abomination_n to_o the_o egyptian_n that_o the_o jew_n shall_v sacrifice_v in_o their_o land_n they_o will_v not_o have_v suffer_v they_o then_o to_o have_v preach_v up_o their_o religion_n in_o all_o their_o pulpit_n in_o turkey_n at_o this_o day_n christian_n in_o many_o place_n have_v the_o liberty_n of_o their_o conscience_n among_o themselves_o and_o have_v their_o place_n for_o worship_n to_o assemble_v in_o but_o they_o be_v not_o so_o much_o as_o permit_v to_o come_v into_o their_o temple_n much_o less_o to_o preach_v up_o their_o religion_n in_o their_o pulpit_n in_o france_n the_o protestant_n be_v permit_v to_o preach_v but_o it_o be_v only_o in_o such_o place_n as_o be_v appoint_v for_o they_o they_o may_v not_o preach_v in_o popish_a pulpit_n tha●_n be_v not_o permit_v unto_o they_o in_o the_o low-countries_n there_o be_v liberty_n of_o conscience_n which_o they_o so_o much_o plead_v for_o of_o which_o afterward_o and_o yet_o the_o divers_a sect_n that_o be_v there_o be_v not_o suffer_v to_o preach_v out_o of_o those_o place_n assign_v unto_o they_o or_o to_o preach_v public_o in_o any_o of_o their_o pulpit_n against_o the_o religion_n establish_v by_o authority_n neither_o be_v they_o permit_v to_o unchristian_a they_o or_o unchurch_n they_o and_o public_o and_o in_o print_n to_o proclaim_v they_o enemy_n of_o christ_n government_n and_o if_o any_o shall_v dare_v attempt_v such_o a_o thing_n or_o go_v about_o to_o disgrace_v their_o minister_n and_o church-government_n or_o in_o the_o least_o entrench_v upon_o the_o magistrate_n authority_n they_o will_v be_v make_v sly_a like_o lightning_n before_o thunder_n and_o yet_o the_o brother_n ●mong_v we_o have_v the_o liberty_n of_o all_o the_o pulpit_n throch_v the_o kingdom_n without_o control_n and_o vent_v all_o their_o new_a way_n and_o their_o new_a bear_a truth_n and_o setup_a their_o new_a light_n without_o any_o molestation_n and_o have_v all_o respectful_a usage_n and_o the_o only_a esteem_n of_o the_o people_n and_o be_v more_o follow_v than_o all_o our_o learned_a godly_a and_o painful_a orthodox_n minister_n and_o yet_o they_o cry_v out_o of_o persecution_n and_o unchurch_n and_o unchristian_a we_o all_o and_o proclaim_v both_o minister_n and_o people_n all_o enemy_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o kingdom_n and_o count_v of_o we_o little_a better_o than_o of_o infidel_n and_o keep_v our_o child_n from_o baptism_n and_o debar_v we_o from_o communion_n with_o they_o and_o exercise_v a_o kind_n of_o absolute_a lordship_n over_o all_o their_o brethren_n so_o as_o diotrephes_n never_o do_v the_o like_a nor_o the_o pope_n mo●e_n and_o yet_o they_o cry_v out_o of_o persecution_n against_o the_o aint_n and_o lay_v odious_a aspersion_n upon_o their_o brethren_n and_o fellow_n presbyter_n persuade_v the_o people_n that_o the_o presbyterian_a way_n will_v be_v as_o bad_a or_o worse_o than_o tha●_n of_o the_o prelate_n but_o if_o we_o as_o due_o examine_v the_o manner_n of_o the_o independent_a government_n and_o compare_v it_o with_o the_o presbyterian_a as_o we_o have_v do_v the_o manner_n of_o their_o preach_n with_o they_o we_o shall_v find_v there_o be_v little_a reason_n why_o they_o shall_v so_o vilipend_v the_o presbyterian_a and_o magnify_v their_o own_o and_o why_o they_o shall_v make_v it_o so_o hateful_a and_o odious_a to_o the_o people_n lay_v aside_o therefore_o all_o prejudice_n let_v we_o examine_v thing_n with_o deliberation_n and_o then_o it_o will_v be_v soon_o evident_a that_o the_o presbyterian_a government_n be_v not_o as_o bad_a or_o worse_o than_o that_o of_o the_o prelate_n nor_o so_o lordly_a as_o that_o of_o the_o independent_a government_n which_o be_v also_o presbyterian_a and_o they_o as_o well_o presbyter_n as_o their_o brethren_n it_o be_v well_o know_v that_o the_o prelate_n assume_v and_o arrogate_a unto_o themselves_o to_o be_v the_o only_a pastor_n of_o their_o diocese_n and_o rule_v all_o the_o minister_n and_o people_n under_o they_o by_o their_o own_o authority_n and_o spoil_v all_o both_o minister_n and_o people_n and_o the_o several_a congregation_n under_o they_o of_o their_o liberty_n and_o make_v they_o all_o both_o minister_n and_o people_n their_o vassal_n and_o slave_n and_o from_o whose●_n ourt_v there_o be_v no_o appeal_n whereas_o the_o presbyterian_a manner_n of_o government_n be_v not_o as_o that_o of_o lord_n and_o master_n o●er_v subject_n and_o servant_n but_o social_a as_o between_o equal_n between_o brethren_n friend_n and_o colleague_n who_o all_o judge_n &_o be_v al●_n judge_v according_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n where_o no_o congregation_n be_v above_o another_o congregation_n no_o minister_n be_v above_o another_o minister_n but_o only_o for_o order-sake_n where_o every_o presbyter_n be_v leave_v to_o enjoy_v the_o whole_a office_n of_o a_o presbyter_n and_o each_o congregation_n to_o the_o freedom_n of_o a_o congregation_n and_o what_o belong_v unto_o they_o and_o they_o able_a to_o perform_v it_o and_o the_o class_n to_o corroborate_v and_o strengthen_v they_o and_o if_o any_o man_n be_v wrong_v by_o the_o presbytery_n he_o may_v have_v the_o benefit_n of_o his_o appeal_n and_o be_v clear_v by_o more_o righteous_a judge_n a_o course_n ever_o follow_v by_o the_o church_n and_o agreeable_a to_o the_o light_n of_o nature_n so_o that_o i_o say_v if_o man_n will_v without_o a_o prejudicate_a opinion_n weigh_v and_o consider_v all_o thing_n and_o compare_v the_o government_n of_o the_o prelate_n with_o that_o of_o the_o presbyterian_a they_o will_v speedy_o be_v undeceive_v and_o again_o if_o they_o will_v compare_v the_o presbyterian_a government_n dependent_a with_o the_o presbyterian_a government_n independent_a they_o will_v have_v more_o honourable_a
what_o their_o minister_n have_v do_v since_o i_o know_v not_o but_o i_o well_o perceive_v it_o be_v as_o great_a a_o difficu_o for_o a_o poor_a man_n to_o get_v into_o some_o of_o their_o congregation_n as_o to_o get_v into_o suttons-hospitall_n and_o that_o i_o conceive_v to_o be_v the_o only_a occasion_n that_o make_v some_o walk_n so_o long_o in_o many_o congregation_n before_o they_o come_v to_o be_v admit_v member_n for_o if_o they_o be_v rich_a they_o be_v speedy_o receive_v nay_o invite_v to_o be_v member_n it_o be_v too_o well_o know_v that_o many_o godly_a and_o holy_a people_n have_v leave_v their_o native_a country_n and_o transport_v themselves_o over_o into_o new_a england_n where_o this_o government_n be_v set_v up_o only_o that_o they_o may_v enjoy_v the_o ordinance_n there_o in_o their_o purity_n they_o be_v believer_n before_o they_o go_v and_o be_v baptize_v and_o such_o as_o be_v know_v before_o they_o go_v thither_o to_o be_v the_o dear_a servant_n of_o god_n but_o when_o they_o come_v there_o especial_o if_o they_o be_v poor_a they_o make_v they_o walk_v some_o a_o year_n some_o more_o yea_o some_o six_o or_o seven_o before_o they_o can_v be_v admit_v member_n of_o their_o congregation_n and_o they_o baptize_v none_o of_o those_o child_n that_o be_v bear_v there_o before_o their_o parent_n be_v join_v member_n and_o except_o they_o will_v in_o all_o thing_n conform_v themselves_o to_o their_o own_o condition_n they_o shall_v never_o be_v admit_v and_o some_o time_n the_o man_n only_o be_v admit_v and_o his_o wife_n leave_v out_o still_o to_o walk_v and_o some_o time_n the_o wife_n be_v admit_v and_o the_o man_n leave_v out_o still_o to_o walk_v and_o both_o these_o notwithstanding_o be_v believer_n and_o baptize_v and_o after_o with_o a_o great_a deal_n of_o difficulty_n they_o be_v admit_v to_o be_v member_n a_o very_a small_a offence_n will_v be_v sufficient_a to_o cast_v they_o out_o again_o if_o they_o be_v poor_a but_o for_o story_n of_o this_o nature_n i_o do_v not_o love_v to_o multiply_v they_o but_o i_o have_v hear_v many_o of_o this_o kind_n from_o those_o place_n and_o from_o such_o as_o have_v be_v in_o new-england_n and_o man_n both_o then_o and_o now_o no_o way_n evil_o affect_v either_o to_o the_o place_n or_o people_n serve_v god_n there_o but_o it_o be_v too_o notorious_a they_o lord_n it_o there_o over_o god_n poor_a clergy_n in_o the_o superlative_a degree_n and_o every_o man_n that_o have_v but_o eye_n in_o his_o head_n may_v see_v it_o here_o in_o england_n in_o their_o congregation_n what_o difference_n they_o make_v between_o the_o rich_a and_o poor_a and_o that_o they_o have_v the_o faith_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n in_o respect_n of_o person_n a_o sin_n in_o saint_n james_n his_o time_n high_o blame_v in_o christian_n james_n 2._o and_o as_o in_o their_o carriage_n towards_o the_o poor_a they_o be_v very_o lofty_a and_o look_v for_o great_a observance_n and_o attendance_n from_o they_o wheresoever_o they_o come_v so_o likewise_o a_o little_a thing_n will_v displease_v they_o if_o they_o speak_v a_o word_n amiss_o it_o be_v enough_o to_o be_v cast_v out_o of_o the_o congregation_n precedent_n of_o this_o nature_n may_v be_v bring_v many_o and_o if_o all_o this_o be_v not_o to_o lord_n it_o over_o god_n clergy_n i_o know_v not_o what_o it_o be_v to_o admit_v of_o none_o though_o believer_n and_o already_o baptize_v but_o such_o as_o will_v come_v in_o upon_o their_o own_o term_n and_o keep_v out_o the_o poor_a either_o altogether_o or_o as_o long_o as_o please_v they_o without_o any_o other_o reason_n but_o because_o they_o be_v poor_a and_o cast_v they_o out_o again_o upon_o every_o slender_a occasion_n i_o say_v if_o all_o this_o be_v not_o a_o most_o diabolical_a tyranny_n and_o lord_v it_o over_o god_n clergy_n i_o refer_v it_o to_o any_o moderate_a man_n to_o judge_v of_o and_o if_o to_o unchurch_n all_o church_n but_o their_o own_o and_o at_o one_o blast_n to_o proclaim_v they_o all_o enemy_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o kingdom_n and_o to_o deny_v all_o church-fellowship_n with_o they_o be_v not_o more_o than_o a_o diotrephian_a prelatical_a and_o papal_a authority_n there_o be_v never_o any_o in_o the_o world_n and_o if_o this_o be_v not_o to_o lord_n it_o over_o god_n clergy_n there_o be_v never_o any_o know_v now_o i_o say_v if_o the_o independent_a presbyter_n do_v so_o timely_o begin_v their_o absolute_a lord_v of_o it_o what_o will_v they_o do_v if_o their_o government_n be_v establish_v by_o authority_n their_o ministry_n and_o government_n be_v far_o different_a from_o that_o of_o christ_n and_o his_o holy_a prophet_n and_o apostle_n for_o they_o invite_v all_o the_o poor_a to_o come_v in_o and_o to_o buy_v milk_n yea_o to_o come_v in_o and_o buy_v milk_n without_o money_n isaiah_n 55_o 〈◊〉_d and_o saint_n paul_n for_o the_o encourage_n of_o the_o poor_a to_o come_v in_o ●aith_o not_o many_o mighty_a not_o many_o noble_a but_o the_o mean_a and_o contemptible_a thing_n have_v the_o lord_n make_v choice_n of_o intimate_v unto_o the_o poor_a that_o they_o have_v as_o good_a right_n to_o heaven_n as_o the_o great_a and_o chief_a and_o our_o saviour_n christ_n say_v come_v unto_o i_o all_o you_o that_o be_v weary_a and_o heavy_a lade_v and_o you_o shall_v find_v rest_n unto_o your_o soul_n our_o saviour_n have_v no_o respect_n of_o person_n but_o the_o poor_a be_v with_o he_o as_o acceptable_a as_o the_o rich_a if_o they_o be_v weary_a and_o heavy_a lade_v with_o their_o sin_n for_o that_o be_v all_o the_o condition_n that_o christ_n require_v in_o all_o that_o desire_v to_o be_v admit_v member_n of_o his_o church_n now_o when_o these_o presbyter_n already_o make_v so_o great_a difference_n between_o the_o poor_a and_o the_o rich_a and_o between_o believer_n and_o believer_n as_o they_o will_v admit_v none_o but_o at_o their_o own_o time_n and_o upon_o their_o own_o condition_n i_o do_v conceive_v that_o this_o be_v a_o most_o tyrannical_o lord_v it_o over_o god_n clergy_n and_o inheritance_n which_o when_o they_o daily_o do_v it_o and_o the_o presbyter_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n do_v it_o not_o it_o be_v most_o apparent_a that_o their_o rule_n and_o domination_n be_v more_o prelatical_a and_o more_o to_o be_v fear_v than_o that_o of_o the_o presbyter_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n for_o from_o the_o independent_a presbyter_n they_o can_v never_o expect_v any_o appeal_n for_o relief_n and_o redress_n whatsoever_o wrong_a or_o injury_n they_o have_v sustain_v by_o they_o and_o therefore_o there_o be_v no_o just_a cause_n why_o any_o shall_v so_o traduce_v the_o presbytery_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n as_o to_o think_v they_o will_v lord_n it_o over_o the_o people_n from_o who_o they_o may_v ever_o expect_v far_o better_a measure_n than_o ever_o they_o can_v from_o the_o independent_a presbytery_n which_o if_o it_o shall_v once_o be_v establish_v will_v tend_v to_o nothing_o else_o but_o to_o enslave_v the_o whole_a kingdom_n and_o to_o bring_v in_o a_o confusion_n upon_o both_o church_n and_o state_n but_o now_o it_o will_v not_o be_v amiss_o before_o the_o conclusion_n as_o we_o have_v compare_v the_o presbyter_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n with_o the_o presbyter_n independent_a both_o in_o regard_n of_o their_o doctrine_n and_o discipline_n so_o now_o likewise_o here_o to_o paragonate_v they_o together_o in_o their_o proceed_n for_o the_o advancement_n of_o christ_n kingdom_n that_o all_o man_n may_v see_v in_o that_o regard_n also_o which_o of_o their_o endeavour_n tend_v most_o to_o the_o advancement_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o which_o of_o they_o ought_v to_o be_v prefer_v before_o other_o and_o which_o of_o they_o do_v more_o real_o and_o true_o tend_v not_o only_o to_o god_n glory_n but_o to_o the_o peace_n also_o of_o the_o church_n and_o state_n for_o the_o presbyter_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n they_o 〈◊〉_d and_o endeavour_n as_o there_o be_v but_o one_o body_n one_o spirit_n one_o hope_n one_o lord_n one_o faith_n one_o baptism_n one_o god_n and_o father_n over_o over_o all_o who_o be_v above_o all_o and_o through_o all_o and_o one_o true_a christian_a religion_n eph._n 4._o so_o that_o this_o only_a may_v be_v establish_v through_o the_o three_o kingdom_n and_o that_o all_o erroneous_a way_n of_o worship_v and_o serve_v god_n and_o that_o tend_v to_o lead_v man_n to_o perdition_n and_o make_v disturbance_n in_o church_n and_o state_n may_v not_o public_o be_v tolerate_v the_o independent_o on_o the_o contrary_a both_o public_o and_o private_o and_o in_o all_o their_o bitter_a rail_n and_o intolerable_a pamphlet_n as_o that_o of_o the_o compassionate_a samaritan_n the_o storm_a of_o antichrist_n and_o that_o
offender_n whether_o they_o be_v delinquent_n in_o doctrine_n or_o manner_n and_o although_o christian_n by_o the_o gospel_n be_v free_v from_o the_o ceremonial_a law_n yet_o we_o be_v not_o free_v from_o the_o substance_n of_o it_o for_o he_o that_o say_v to_o the_o israelite_n be_v you_o holy_a as_o i_o be_o holy_a say_v also_o to_o all_o christian_n be_v you_o holy_a as_o i_o be_o holy_a 1_o pet._n 1._o so_o that_o although_o the_o ceremony_n be_v abolish_v yet_o the_o substance_n remain_v still_o in_o force_n and_o although_o the_o rigour_n of_o the_o judicial_a law_n be_v take_v away_o and_o christian_n be_v not_o tie_v to_o that_o manner_n of_o administration_n of_o justice_n yet_o the_o equity_n of_o that_o law_n do_v still_o continue_v and_o righteous_a judgement_n be_v every_o where_o among_o all_o christian_n to_o be_v execute_v and_o satisfaction_n to_o be_v make_v to_o all_o such_o as_o have_v be_v unjust_o damnify_v and_o although_o we_o be_v free_v from_o the_o curse_n malediction_n and_o coaction_n of_o the_o moral_a law_n yet_o we_o be_v not_o free_v from_o the_o obedience_n of_o it_o so_o that_o whatsoever_o be_v command_v in_o it_o to_o the_o israelite_n or_o forbid_v they_o the_o same_o be_v both_o command_v and_o forbid_v to_o all_o christian_n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n and_o whatsoever_o be_v death_n by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o nature_n then_o for_o aught_o i_o know_v aught_o to_o be_v punish_v with_o death_n now_o among_o christian_n as_o blasphemor_n wizard_n witch_n idolater_n and_o all_o such_o as_o despise_v moses_n law_n under_o the_o mouth_n of_o two_o or_o three_o witness_n if_o they_o be_v people_n within_o the_o pale_a of_o the_o church_n and_o make_v profession_n of_o the_o christian_a religion_n for_o christian_n have_v nothing_o to_o do_v with_o those_o that_o be_v without_o to_o judge_v they_o except_o they_o offend_v against_o the_o civil_a and_o municipal_a law_n of_o the_o country_n and_o against_o the_o law_n of_o nation_n and_o nature_n when_o they_o live_v among_o they_o for_o christ_n come_v not_o to_o change_v the_o moral_a law_n but_o to_o ratify_v it_o in_o all_o thing_n and_o although_o the_o sabbath_n be_v change_v in_o respect_n of_o the_o day_n yet_o for_o the_o holiness_n of_o the_o first_o day_n of_o the_o week_n which_o be_v the_o christian_n sabbath_n and_o which_o be_v in_o place_n of_o it_o i_o be_o confident_a it_o ought_v most_o careful_o to_o be_v observe_v and_o that_o the_o whole_a day_n ought_v in_o all_o sanctity_n and_o holiness_n to_o be_v keep_v and_o beside_o the_o four_o commandment_n for_o the_o sanctification_n of_o a_o seven_o day_n we_o have_v the_o example_n of_o the_o primitive_a christian_n and_o bless_a apostle_n who_o always_o have_v their_o meeting_n on_o the_o first_o day_n of_o the_o week_n and_o spend_v the_o whole_a day_n in_o the_o duty_n of_o piety_n and_o charity_n for_o in_o the_o 20_o of_o the_o act_n we_o read_v that_o on_o the_o first_o day_n of_o the_o week_n the_o disciple_n come_v together_o to_o break_v bread_n that_o be_v for_o the_o hear_n of_o the_o word_n and_o for_o the_o administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o for_o the_o exercise_v of_o all_o holy_a duty_n and_o that_o paul_n preach_v there_o until_o midnight_n and_o that_o when_o eutichus_n be_v fall_v down_o with_o sleep_n paul_n restore_v he_o to_o life_n again_o to_o all_o their_o comfort_n so_o that_o here_o we_o have_v one_o precedent_n that_o the_o whole_a lord_n day_n wasspent_v by_o all_o those_o christian_n in_o the_o work_n of_o piety_n and_o charity_n again_o in_o the_o first_o of_o the_o revelation_n saint_n john_n say_v that_o he_o be_v in_o the_o spirit_n on_o the_o lord_n day_n that_o be_v the_o first_o day_n of_o the_o week_n call_v by_o saint_n john_n the_o lord_n day_n and_o there_o the_o angel_n preach_v unto_o he_o that_o day_n and_o command_v saint_n john_n to_o take_v so_o much_o of_o his_o sermon_n by_o writing_n as_o god_n in_o his_o wisdom_n think_v fit_a to_o reveal_v unto_o his_o church_n and_o he_o that_o shall_v diligent_o read_v what_o be_v there_o write_v will_v gather_v that_o the_o whole_a day_n be_v take_v up_o by_o saint_n john_n and_o spend_v in_o hear_v and_o write_v and_o meditate_v of_o what_o he_o have_v hear_v for_o without_o doubt_n saint_n john_n make_v it_o his_o whole_a day_n work_v to_o be_v spiritual_o employ_v and_o as_o the_o holy_a communion_n be_v call_v the_o lord_n supper_n and_o all_o the_o time_n of_o that_o action_n be_v holy_o to_o be_v employ_v as_o be_v ordain_v by_o christ_n himself_o to_o that_o end_n even_o so_o the_o lord_n day_n be_v a_o day_n dedicate_v unro_fw-la christ_n and_o ordain_v by_o he_o for_o holy_a duty_n and_o for_o the_o hear_n of_o the_o word_n and_o for_o the_o administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o prayer_n the_o whole_a day_n ought_v both_o private_o and_o public_o to_o be_v take_v up_o in_o the_o employment_n and_o work_n of_o piety_n and_o charity_n as_o hear_v read_v meditate_v prayer_n repetition_n of_o sermon_n in_o their_o family_n and_o catechise_n and_o instruct_v their_o child_n and_o servant_n sing_v of_o psalm_n in_o visit_v the_o sick_a and_o they_o that_o be_v in_o prison_n relieve_v the_o poor_a and_o necessitate_a etc._n etc._n these_o example_n of_o the_o primitive_a christian_n be_v for_o our_o imitation_n for_o so_o saint_n paul_n in_o the_o three_o of_o the_o philippian_n in_o the_o 17._o verse_n say_v brethren_n be_v follower_n together_o of_o i_o and_o mark_v they_o which_o walk_v so_o as_o you_o have_v we_o for_o a_o example_n for_o our_o conversation_n be_v in_o heaven_n and_o in_o the_o 4._o chapter_n verse_n 8._o he_o say_v final_o brethren_n whatsoever_o thing_n be_v true_a whatsoever_o thing_n be_v honest_a whatsoever_o thing_n be_v just_a whatsoever_o thing_n be_v pure_a whatsoever_o thing_n be_v lovely_a whatsoever_o thing_n be_v of_o good_a report_n if_o there_o be_v any_o virtue_n if_o there_o be_v any_o praise_n think_v on_o these_o thing_n those_o thing_n which_o you_o have_v both_o learned_a and_o receive_v and_o hear_v and_o see_v in_o i_o do_v and_o the_o god_n of_o peace_n shall_v be_v with_o you_o by_o the_o which_o testimony_n to_o omit_v many_o more_o we_o be_v tie_v to_o follow_v the_o example_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o to_o imitate_v they_o in_o all_o that_o be_v holy_a and_o good_a and_o of_o good_a report_n now_o it_o be_v praise_v worthy_a and_o of_o good_a report_n to_o spend_v the_o whole_a lord_n day_n in_o holy_a employment_n and_o we_o have_v the_o apostle_n example_n and_o the_o primitive_a christian_n for_o so_o do_v and_o therefore_o we_o ought_v to_o spend_v the_o whole_a lord_n day_n in_o the_o work_n of_o piety_n and_o charity_n and_o by_o this_o the_o sanctify_a of_o the_o christian_a sabbath_n which_o be_v every_o seven_o day_n be_v ratify_v the_o profanation_n of_o the_o which_o in_o the_o reform_a church_n and_o in_o many_o place_n through_o these_o three_o kingdom_n have_v be_v one_o of_o the_o cause_n of_o all_o those_o heavy_a judgement_n the_o whole_a christian_a world_n now_o groan_v under_o and_o so_o much_o more_o will_v the_o lord_n be_v provoke_v by_o the_o toleration_n of_o all_o religion_n among_o we_o which_o will_v give_v just_a occasion_n of_o violate_v of_o all_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n and_o of_o disobedience_n both_o to_o god_n and_o man_n for_o it_o be_v most_o sure_a that_o the_o moral_a law_n be_v not_o alter_v in_o any_o thing_n for_o substance_n and_o that_o god_n that_o by_o it_o enjoin_v but_o one_o religion_n to_o the_o israelite_n and_o command_v they_o to_o keep_v that_o pure_a and_o undefiled_a and_o to_o punish_v all_o idolater_n blasphemer_n and_o seducer_n have_v enjoin_v the_o same_o to_o all_o christian_n and_o have_v not_o suffer_v or_o permit_v they_o to_o tolerate_v all_o religion_n or_o any_o sect_n or_o heresy_n which_o by_o the_o apostle_n in_o the_o five_o of_o the_o galatian_n be_v call_v the_o work_n of_o the_o devil_n who_o declare_v there_o also_o that_o they_o that_o do_v they_o shall_v not_o enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n so_o that_o those_o that_o will_v bring_v in_o a_o toleration_n of_o all_o religion_n have_v a_o desire_n to_o send_v man_n to_o the_o devil_n which_o be_v one_o of_o the_o great_a impiety_n and_o wickedness_n that_o can_v be_v perpetrate_v by_o the_o son_n of_o man_n true_o if_o god_n have_v such_o a_o care_n for_o the_o preserve_n of_o the_o very_a natural_a life_n of_o man_n that_o charissimum_fw-la animal_n as_o he_o make_v a_o law_n that_o it_o shall_v be_v death_n in_o any_o to_o tolerate_v or_o suffer_v any_o beast_n to_o go_v at_o liberty_n and_o range_v abroad_o if_o
he_o kill_v a_o man_n after_o he_o have_v be_v tell_v and_o forewarn_v of_o it_o that_o it_o be_v a_o dangerous_a creature_n as_o we_o may_v see_v exod._a 21._o 28_o 29._o where_o the_o lord_n thus_o speak_v if_o a_o ox_n gore_v a_o man_n or_o a_o woman_n that_o they_o die_v than_o the_o ox_n shall_v be_v sure_o stone_v and_o his_o flesh_n shall_v not_o be_v eat_v but_o the_o owner_n of_o the_o ox_n shall_v be_v quit_v but_o if_o the_o ox_n be_v wont_a to_o push_v with_o his_o horn_n in_o time_n past_a and_o it_o have_v be_v testify_v unto_o his_o owner_n and_o he_o have_v not_o keep_v he_o in_o but_o that_o he_o have_v kill_v a_o man_n or_o a_o woman_n the_o ox_n shall_v be_v stone_v and_o his_o owner_n also_o shall_v be_v put_v to_o death_n i_o say_v if_o the_o wilful_a tolerate_n of_o but_o a_o mischievous_a creature_n to_o go_v loose_a after_o his_o owner_n be_v inform_v of_o the_o dangerousnesse_n of_o it_o and_o that_o the_o owner_n himself_o be_v to_o be_v put_v to_o death_n if_o he_o kill_v either_o a_o man_n or_o a_o woman_n after_o it_o how_o much_o more_o may_v we_o think_v the_o lord_n will_v severe_o punish_v those_o man_n that_o will_v suffer_v heresy_n and_o most_o dangerous_a and_o blasphemous_a opinion_n and_o idolatry_n to_o go_v at_o liberty_n which_o with_o their_o horn_n push_v man_n into_o hell_n itself_o to_o the_o destroy_v both_o of_o the_o soul_n and_o body_n of_o the_o poor_a people_n for_o in_o the_o five_o of_o the_o galatian_n it_o be_v say_v that_o heresy_n and_o idolatry_n etc._n etc._n be_v among_o those_o sin_n that_o send_v man_n to_o perdition_n and_o we_o be_v inform_v by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n of_o the_o deadliness_n of_o all_o sin_n but_o especial_o of_o those_o there_o name_v and_o god_n have_v often_o teach_v we_o in_o his_o holy_a law_n how_o much_o he_o detest_v all_o false_a religion_n and_o false_a worship_n and_o by_o a_o special_a edict_n exod._n 22._o verse_n 20._o have_v inform_v we_o say_v he_o that_o sacrifice_v unto_o any_o god_n save_o the_o lord_n shall_v be_v put_v to_o death_n so_o that_o we_o can_v pretend_v ignorance_n and_o here_o be_v no_o exception_n of_o either_o person_n or_o sex_n and_o the_o same_o law_n be_v reiterated_a in_o many_o more_o place_n of_o holy_a writ_n and_o especial_o deuter_n 13._o where_o the_o whole_a chapter_n be_v spend_v about_o the_o punishment_n of_o idolater_n and_o such_o as_o set_v up_o a_o false_a way_n of_o worship_v god_n and_o for_o the_o moral_a law_n many_o of_o the_o independent_o themselves_o as_o i_o can_v out_o of_o several_a of_o their_o writing_n prove_v hold_v that_o it_o be_v not_o alterable_a but_o it_o be_v of_o the_o same_o force_n now_o it_o be_v then_o and_o if_o they_o grant_v this_o as_o they_o do_v they_o must_v likewise_o acknowledge_v that_o all_o the_o sanction_n of_o it_o and_o penalty_n be_v also_o in_o force_n and_o that_o whatsoever_o be_v death_n by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n then_o be_v by_o the_o same_o law_n death_n n●w_o or_o else_o either_o god_n be_v changeable_a or_o the_o law_n be_v alter_v both_o which_o i_o have_v yet_o so_o good_a opinion_n of_o some_o of_o they_o as_o i_o be_o confident_a they_o will_v not_o assert_v and_o therefore_o they_o must_v necessary_o yield_v unto_o this_o if_o god_n and_o his_o moral_a worship_n or_o law_n be_v the_o same_o and_o unalterable_a they_o must_v i_o say_v then_o also_o accord_v unto_o this_o that_o whatsoever_o be_v not_o then_o to_o be_v tolerate_v in_o religion_n be_v not_o now_o to_o be_v suffer_v but_o severe_o be_v proceed_v against_o ye●_n christ_n himself_o in_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o church_n of_o pergamos_n and_o thyatiria_n and_o laodic●a_n rev._n 2._o and_o 3._o as_o i_o prove_v before_o show_v by_o threaten_v such_o heavy_a judgement_n upon_o those_o church_n for_o but_o connive_v at_o and_o tolerate_v of_o idolatry_n and_o those_o other_o filthy_a abomination_n there_o and_o by_o threaten_v with_o all_o their_o destruction_n and_o the_o kill_n of_o they_o and_o their_o child_n with_o the_o sword_n and_o the_o remove_n from_o they_o the_o candlestick_n that_o be_v the_o gospel_n the_o great_a punishment_n that_o can_v happen_v to_o people_n to_o be_v leave_v in_o darkness_n and_o blindness_n and_o in_o the_o shadow_n of_o death_n and_o in_o the_o power_n of_o satan_n and_o to_o be_v punish_v moreover_o with_o temporal_a misery_n i_o say_v all_o these_o commination_n and_o threat_n sufficient_o declare_v unto_o all_o advise_a christian_n that_o christ_n the_o lord_n and_o king_n of_o his_o church_n have_v not_o alter_v his_o mind_n but_o that_o that_o law_n be_v still_o in_o force_n that_o be_v make_v by_o he_o to_o his_o people_n of_o old_a yea_o he_o have_v far_a declare_v unto_o hi●_n people_n matth._n 5._o 17._o 19_o that_o he_o come_v not_o to_o change_v the_o law_n but_o to_o fulfil_v it_o and_o that_o whosoever_o shall_v teach_v the_o break_n of_o the_o least_o of_o his_o holy_a law_n shall_v be_v the_o least_o in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n now_o by_o all_o those_o his_o holy_a law_n make_v unto_o his_o people_n of_o old_a and_o by_o the_o practice_n of_o all_o his_o holy_a servant_n and_o prophet_n he_o have_v declare_v how_o much_o he_o detest_v and_o abhor_v the_o toleration_n of_o all_o religion_n and_o not_o only_o by_o his_o word_n often_o reiterated_a but_o he_o have_v also_o declare_v his_o displeasure_n by_o the_o punishment_n and_o immediate_a judgement_n he_o lay_v upon_o idolater_n as_o that_o before_o mention_v in_o the_o two_o and_o thirty_o of_o exodus_fw-la where_o moses_n from_o the_o lord_n verse_n 32._o say_v who_o be_v on_o the_o lord_n side_n let_v he_o come_v unto_o i_o and_o the_o son_n of_o levi_n gather_v themselves_o together_o unto_o he_o and_o he_o say_v unto_o they_o thus_o say_v the_o lord_n god_n of_o israel_n put_v every_o man_n his_o sword_n by_o his_o side_n and_o go_v out_o from_o gate_n to_o gate_n through_o the_o camp_n and_o slay_v every_o man_n his_o brother_n and_o every_o man_n his_o companion_n and_o every_o man_n his_o neighbour_n here_o we_o find_v according_a to_o that_o of_o deut._n the_o thirteen_o that_o in_o god_n quarrel_n and_o for_o the_o vindicate_a of_o his_o honour_n we_o may_v neither_o spare_v brother_n companion_n or_o nigh_a alye_n so_o that_o if_o god_n will_v not_o then_o tolerate_v all_o religion_n he_o will_v now_o much_o less_o endure_v it_o among_o we_o especial_o when_o he_o have_v so_o often_o manifest_v his_o displeasure_n against_o we_o as_o we_o may_v see_v also_o number_v the_o ●5_n where_o it_o be_v record_v how_o much_o he_o be_v angry_a with_o his_o people_n for_o go_v into_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o god_n of_o the_o moabite_n and_o for_o their_o eat_n and_o bow_v down_o to_o their_o god_n and_o for_o join_v themselves_o with_o baalpeor_n for_o it_o be_v say_v there_o that_o the_o anger_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v kindle_v against_o israel_n and_o he_o say_v unto_o moses_n take_v all_o the_o head_n of_o the_o people_n and_o hang_v they_o up_o before_o the_o lord_n against_o the_o sun_n that_o the_o fierce_a anger_n of_o the_o lord_n may_v be_v turn_v away_o from_o israel_n and_o moses_n say_v unto_o the_o judge_n of_o israel_n s●ay_v y●●_n every_o one_o his_o man_n that_o be_v join_v unto_o baalpeor_n verse_n 2._o 3_o 4_o 5._o this_o precedent_n also_o we_o have_v of_o god_n displeasure_n against_o a_o toleration_n of_o any_o false_a religion_n or_o false_a way_n of_o worship_n so_o that_o all_o such_o as_o ple●d_v for_o a_o toleration_n of_o all_o religion_n show_v that_o they_o have_v either_o no_o religion_n at_o all_o or_o very_o little_a zeal_n for_o god_n yea_o certain_o they_o show_v themselves_o all_o enemy_n of_o christ_n kingdom_n that_o thus_o violate_v his_o law_n and_o trample_v they_o under_o their_o foot_n and_o that_o will_v have_v the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o devil_n set_v up_o every_o where_o and_o all_o religion_n whatsoever_o tolerate_v among_o they_o which_o must_v needs_o provoke_v the_o lord_n to_o anger_n and_o displeasure_n against_o that_o nation_n that_o do_v so_o provoke_v he_o but_o how_o unsufferable_a a_o thing_n than_o be_v it_o in_o any_o that_o have_v the_o name_n of_o christian_n that_o when_o they_o shall_v with_o all_o their_o power_n and_o may_v oppose_v all_o innovation_n in_o religion_n much_o more_o a_o toleration_n of_o all_o religion_n as_o some_o of_o they_o with_o the_o hazard_n of_o their_o life_n and_o liberty_n in_o former_a time_n oppose_v the_o innovation_n and_o the_o novelty_n of_o the_o prelate_n and_o inveigh_v against_o the_o book_n for_o toleration_n of_o sport_n and_o recreation_n on_o the_o lord_n day_n
and_o cry_v out_o against_o it_o as_o a_o intolerable_a violate_v of_o god_n law_n and_o assert_v that_o it_o be_v enough_o to_o provoke_v the_o lord_n to_o anger_v against_o the_o whole_a land_n and_o write_v book_n and_o divine_a tragedy_n upon_o sabbath-breaker_n and_o profaner_n of_o the_o lord_n day_n and_o those_o that_o permit_v the_o profanation_n of_o it_o which_o with_o the_o godly_a of_o those_o time_n be_v repute_v their_o immortal_a honour_n how_o unsufferable_a a_o thing_n therefore_o be_v it_o i_o say_v now_o in_o these_o very_a man_n to_o plead_v for_o a_o toleration_n of_o all_o religion_n that_o can_v not_o then_o tolerate_v sport_n on_o the_o lord_n day_n by_o which_o not_o only_o the_o four_o commandment_n will_v be_v brake_n but_o all_o the_o commandment_n of_o both_o of_o the_o first_o and_o second_o table_n without_o doubt_v they_o have_v a_o great_a deal_n to_o answer_v for_o before_o god_n for_o by_o the_o doctrine_n we_o have_v learn_v from_o our_o law_n giver_n and_o king_n the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n who_o be_v not_o changeable_a though_o they_o be_v they_o that_o break_v the_o least_o of_o god_n commandment_n and_o teach_v man_n so_o to_o do_v whatsoever_o they_o esteem_v of_o themselves_o that_o they_o set_v up_o christ_n upon_o his_o throne_n and_o whatsoever_o opinion_n man_n have_v of_o they_o they_o be_v the_o least_o in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n and_o have_v much_o to_o answer_v for_o before_o his_o tribunal_n for_o these_o their_o wicked_a deal_n and_o true_o it_o exceed_o sad_v my_o heart_n when_o i_o think_v of_o they_o how_o fearful_o they_o be_v fall_v and_o what_o a_o scandal_n and_o blemish_n they_o be_v to_o their_o holy_a profession_n that_o thus_o chameleon_n like_o change_n their_o form_n upon_o every_o occasion_n but_o how_o much_o more_o be_v it_o intolerable_a then_o in_o those_o man_n that_o have_v the_o name_n of_o rabbi_n among_o those_o of_o the_o congregationall_a way_n and_o that_o will_v make_v the_o world_n believe_v they_o be_v the_o only_a saint_n for_o those_o to_o make_v themselves_o merry_a when_o the_o godly_a and_o faithful_a minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n out_o of_o sorrow_n and_o grief_n of_o soul_n spread_v before_o the_o lord_n the_o blasphemy_n of_o the_o time_n as_o good_a hezekiah_n do_v the_o blasphemy_n of_o rahshekah_n that_o it_o may_v move_v the_o people_n to_o mourning_n and_o sackcloth_n and_o to_o humble_v themselves_o under_o the_o mighty_a hand_n of_o god_n for_o the_o diver●ing_n of_o his_o judgement_n that_o do_v for_o these_o their_o blasphemous_a tenant_n hang_v over_o the_o land_n i_o say_v how_o intolerable_a a_o thing_n be_v it_o in_o such_o man_n to_o make_v a_o sport_n at_o it_o and_o as_o solomon_n speak_v of_o the_o wicked_a in_o his_o time_n who_o he_o call_v fool_n to_o make_v a_o mock_n at_o sin_n yet_o such_o there_o be_v as_o cretensis_n by_o name_n among_o the_o rest_n be_v one_o of_o they_o who_o make_v himself_o merry_a at_o these_o blasphemy_n and_o write_v book_n in_o justification_n of_o those_o wicked_a and_o ungodly_a man_n and_o call_v their_o damnable_a practice_n the_o infirmity_n of_o the_o saint_n account_v of_o they_o as_o saint_n and_o holy_a man_n whereas_o the_o good_a and_o zealous_a prophet_n jeremiah_n ch_n 9_o cry_v out_o at_o the_o behold_v the_o abomination_n of_o his_o time_n far_o inferio_fw-la to_o those_o of_o our_o day_n say_v oh_o that_o my_o head_n be_v water_n and_o my_o eye_n a_o fountain_n of_o tear_n that_o i_o may_v weep_v day_n and_o night_n for_o the_o slay_v of_o the_o daughter_n of_o my_o people_n oh_o that_o i_o have_v in_o the_o wilderness_n a_o lodging_n place_n of_o wayfaring_a man_n that_o i_o may_v leave_v my_o people_n and_o go_v from_o they_o for_o they_o be_v all_o adulterer_n a_o assembly_n of_o treacherous_a man_n and_o they_o bend_v their_o tongue_n like_o their_o bow_n for_o lie_n but_o they_o be_v not_o valiant_a for_o the_o truth_n upon_o the_o earth_n and_o they_o know_v not_o i_o say_v the_o lord_n here_o we_o see_v the_o posture_n of_o the_o holy_a prophet_n we_o find_v he_o arm_v and_o clad_v with_o mourning_n to_o behold_v the_o profanation_n of_o the_o truth_n and_o we_o have_v here_o also_o his_o great_a complaint_n that_o at_o that_o time_n there_o be_v not_o any_o valian_n for_o it_o upon_o the_o earth_n if_o now_o this_o glorious_a prophet_n be_v in_o the_o world_n and_o among_o we_o here_o in_o england_n and_o shall_v behold_v those_o damnable_a blasphemy_n that_o be_v every_o where_o ven●ed_v by_o the_o son_n of_o belial_n in_o these_o time_n &_o shall_v see_v how_o few_o upon_o the_o earth_n be_v valiant_a for_o the_o truth_n yea_o how_o they_o labour_v for_o a_o toleration_n of_o all_o religion_n how_o will_v his_o spirit_n be_v move_v &_o how_o will_v his_o soul_n be_v perplex_v within_o he_o to_o see_v it_o and_o what_o fountain_n of_o tear_n will_v he_o pou_v e_z out_o to_o the_o lord_n quench_v of_o the_o fire_n of_o his_o wrath_n and_o indignation_n against_o they_o but_o how_o much_o more_o will_v it_o perplex_v and_o trouble_v h●s_a soul_n to_o see_v any_o that_o shall_v write_v yea_o publish_v book_n wherein_o they_o do_v not_o only_o make_v themselves_o merry_a at_o those_o blaspnemy_n and_o count_v they_o the_o infirmity_n of_o the_o saint_n but_o proclaim_v they_o saint_n that_o perpet●ate_v all_o these_o wickedness_n and_o write_v most_o scurrilous_a ●ailing_n and_o vilify_a book_n and_o pamphlet_n against_o his_o holy_a servant_n that_o be_v valiant_a for_o the_o truth_n count_v they_o speak_v disgraceful_o and_o contemptible_o of_o they_o but_o thimble_n full_a of_o dust_n without_o all_o controversy_n it_o will_v sad_a his_o soul_n to_o the_o very_a death_n and_o so_o indeed_o it_o shall_v trouble_v the_o soul_n of_o those_o that_o be_v true_o godly_a to_o behold_v such_o lawless_a wickedness_n not_o only_o to_o go_v unpunished_a but_o to_o find_v favour_n and_o applause_n even_o of_o those_o that_o be_v master_n of_o the_o assembly_n true_o howsoever_o out_o of_o the_o infinite_a patience_n of_o god_n these_o man_n be_v yet_o suffer_v yet_o i_o be_o most_o confident_a he_o that_o will_v come_v will_v come_v and_o not_o tarry_v to_o revenge_v his_o own_o quarrel_n &_o the_o quarrel_n of_o his_o servant_n that_o be_v valiant_a for_o the_o truth_n and_o i_o will_v take_v the_o liberty_n to_o say_v thus_o much_o to_o st_n cretensis_n that_o reverend_a learned_a and_o ever_o to_o be_v honour_v master_n thomas_n edwards_n who_o he_o so_o much_o vilipend_v and_o slight_v call_v he_o a_o thimble_n full_a of_o dust_n will_v walk_v like_o a_o noble_a lion_n when_o he_o like_o a_o cur_n or_o bandogg_n shall_v go_v bawl_v by_o he_o and_o withal_o i_o will_v advise_v he_o to_o take_v heed_n of_o that_o thimble_n for_o two_o or_o three_o fillip_n more_o of_o it_o upon_o his_o great_a noddle_n may_v so_o stagger_v he_o as_o he_o may_v happy_o never_o recover_v again_o and_o for_o aught_o i_o know_v or_o can_v discern_v god_n may_v make_v half_o a_o thimble_n full_a of_o that_o dust_n to_o put_v out_o his_o eye_n and_o the_o eye_n of_o half_a the_o independent_o and_o sectary_n in_o england_n for_o most_o assure_a i_o be_o that_o all_o such_o as_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n as_o he_o do_v come_v out_o against_o such_o notorious_a enemy_n of_o god_n and_o his_o truth_n as_o cretensis_n and_o his_o associate_n be_v will_v be_v able_a to_o confound_v they_o all_o and_o by_o the_o power_n of_o he_o may_v be_v ever_o strong_a enough_o to_o deal_v with_o the_o whole_a army_n of_o they_o and_o with_o all_o those_o groll_n and_o ●ynnies_n that_o take_v their_o part_n and_o appear_v in_o their_o wicked_a cause_n i_o will_v therefore_o rather_o advise_v cretensis_n not_o giant_n like_a to_o fight_v any_o long_o against_o the_o truth_n but_o to_o humble_v himself_o for_o what_o he_o have_v already_o do_v under_o the_o mighty_a hand_n of_o god_n who_o he_o with_o his_o complice_n &_o abetter_n have_v so_o high_o provoke_v to_o wrath_n and_o anger_n against_o this_o poor_a totter_a kingdom_n it_o be_v not_o cretensis_n with_o all_o his_o foul_a language_n shall_v ever_o be_v able_a to_o bespatter_v the_o immaculate_a reputation_n of_o learned_a and_o godly_a master_n edward_n who_o have_v in_o god_n cause_n ever_o show_v himself_o valiant_a for_o the_o truth_n and_o stand_v in_o the_o gap_n against_o the_o error_n of_o the_o time_n and_o have_v lift_v up_o his_o voice_n like_o a_o trumpet_n which_o will_v be_v for_o his_o immortal_a praise_n when_o too_o too_o many_o of_o his_o brethren_n which_o will_v not_o be_v for_o their_o honour_n be_v silent_a we_o find_v it_o matthew_n 13._o for_o 24_o 25._o when_o the_o man_n have_v
sow_v good_a seed_n in_o his_o field_n that_o while_o the_o man_n sleep_v his_o enemy_n come_v and_o sow_v tare_n among_o the_o wheat_n and_o go_v his_o way_n which_o place_n be_v worthy_a to_o be_v take_v notice_n of_o for_o in_o terminis_fw-la it_o be_v say_v that_o while_o the_o man_n sleep_v this_o i_o say_v be_v to_o be_v take_v notice_n of_o for_o their_o dishonour_n that_o be_v to_o say_v after_o they_o have_v so_o when_o the_o good_a seed_n and_o publish_v the_o truth_n the_o minister_n and_o preacher_n grow_v careless_a and_o like_o the_o people_n of_o laish_n judge_n 18._o ver_fw-la 7._o and_o 10._o where_o they_o live_v secure_a and_o the_o magistrate_n be_v negligent_a in_o their_o place_n put_v no_o man_n to_o shame_n for_o any_o evil_n they_o do_v which_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o their_o overthrow_n as_o it_o be_v there_o record_v and_o will_v be_v of_o we_o and_o the_o ruin_n of_o the_o whole_a kingdom_n if_o not_o timely_o prevent_v as_o be_v guilty_a of_o the_o same_o crime_n this_o indeed_o through_o the_o craft_n of_o the_o enemy_n have_v be_v one_o of_o the_o principall_a occasion_n of_o the_o overspread_a of_o this_o leprosy_n of_o all_o the_o heresy_n that_o now_o swarm_v through_o the_o whole_a kingdom_n that_o the_o minister_n have_v not_o be_v so_o zealous_a and_o servant_n against_o they_o as_o they_o shall_v have_v be_v and_o so_o valiant_a for_o the_o truth_n in_o the_o which_o guiltiness_n master_n edward_n be_v not_o involve_v for_o he_o have_v all_o this_o time_n stand_v valiant_o to_o the_o truth_n and_o show_v himself_o a_o man_n of_o ●ourage_n and_o that_o against_o all_o opposition_n for_o which_o he_o deserve_v especial_o to_o be_v honour_v and_o all_o those_o likewise_o that_o have_v second_v he_o in_o discover_v the_o danger_n of_o those_o devilish_a and_o damnable_a doctrine_n which_o have_v so_o poison_v the_o people_n every_o where_o that_o if_o the_o lord_n of_o his_o infinite_a goodness_n do_v not_o speedy_o send_v help_n and_o put_v into_o the_o heart_n both_o of_o magistrate_n minister_n and_o all_o the_o people_n now_o at_o last_o to_o rouse_v up_o themselves_o and_o show_v themselves_o valiant_a for_o the_o truth_n once_o deliver_v to_o the_o saint_n which_o they_o be_v command_v to_o contend_v for_o judas_n 3._o they_o will_v but_o the_o more_o provoke_v the_o lord_n to_o indignation_n against_o the_o nation_n and_o in_o this_o good_a work_n they_o shall_v set_v before_o their_o eye_n the_o good_a example_n of_o all_o those_o worthy_a king_n and_o governor_n who_o name_n be_v record_v in_o holy_a writ_n to_o their_o everlasting_a honour_n for_o their_o diligence_n and_o care_n in_o suppress_v of_o error_n and_o idolatry_n withal_o they_o shall_v lay_v to_o heart_n and_o consider_v that_o it_o high_o concern_v they_o if_o they_o desire_v the_o good_a of_o themselves_o and_o the_o welfare_n of_o their_o posterity_n and_o the_o peace_n of_o the_o whole_a land_n all_o which_o they_o will_v be_v deprive_v of_o if_o they_o speedy_o labour_v not_o to_o prevent_v they_o which_o a_o toleration_n of_o all_o religion_n can_v never_o do_v for_o that_o must_v needs_o provoke_v the_o lord_n to_o jealousy_n against_o we_o all_o for_o if_o we_o but_o due_o weigh_v what_o the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v make_v know_v unto_o we_o in_o many_o place_n then_o that_o i_o now_o say_v will_v be_v out_o of_o doubt_n but_o omit_v many_o place_n i_o will_v pitch_v upon_o one_o or_o two_o judges_z 5_o and_o 8._o it_o be_v say_v there_o they_o choose_v new_a god_n than_o be_v war_n in_o the_o gate_n here_o we_o see_v when_o all_o religion_n come_v to_o be_v tolerate_v then_o be_v war_n in_o the_o gate_n and_o in_o the_o second_o of_o the_o chronicle_n chap._n 15._o ver_fw-la 3._o 5_o 6._o now_o for_o a_o long_a season_n say_v the_o holy_a ghost_n israel_n have_v be_v without_o a_o true_a god_n and_o without_o a_o teach_a priest_n and_o without_o law_n and_o in_o those_o time_n there_o be_v no_o peace_n to_o he_o that_o go_v out_o nor_o to_o he_o that_o come_v in_o but_o great_a vexation_n be_v upon_o all_o the_o inhabitant_n of_o the_o country_n and_o nation_n be_v destroy_v of_o nation_n and_o city_n of_o city_n for_o god_n do_v vex_v they_o with_o all_o adversity_n now_o the_o cause_n of_o all_o these_o misery_n and_o calamity_n that_o do_v come_v upon_o all_o these_o people_n be_v for_o their_o corrupt_v of_o their_o religion_n and_o this_o we_o shall_v find_v through_o the_o whole_a scripture_n to_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n upon_o the_o nation_n for_o the_o corrupt_a of_o their_o way_n and_o for_o the_o tolerate_n of_o idolatry_n and_o the_o adulterate_n of_o the_o true_a religion_n among_o they_o as_o be_v sufficient_o manifest_a both_o from_o the_o place_n above_o specify_v and_o from_o the_o second_o and_o three_o of_o the_o revelation_n where_o the_o lord_n denounce_v judgement_n against_o the_o church_n of_o pergamos_n and_o thyatira_n etc._n etc._n for_o but_o connive_v at_o and_o tolerate_v of_o the_o false_a doctrine_n among_o they_o in_o the_o which_o place_n as_o the_o lord_n show_v he_o be_v the_o same_o in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n not_o changeable_a so_o it_o shall_v lesson_n both_o people_n and_o minister_n but_o especial_o the_o magistrate_n now_o to_o add_v their_o help_a hand_n for_o the_o suppress_n of_o these_o damnable_a and_o wicked_a doctrine_n that_o be_v now_o every_o where_o too_o much_o divulge_v and_o publish_v they_o shall_v also_o consider_v what_o the_o lord_n say_v zachariah_n 13._o for_o 3._o and_o it_o shall_v come_v to_o pass_v say_v the_o prophet_n that_o when_o any_o shall_v yet_o prophesy_v than_o his_o father_n and_o his_o mother_n that_o bear_v he_o shall_v say_v unto_o he_o thou_o shall_v not_o live_v for_o thou_o speak_v lie_n in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o his_o father_n and_o mother_n that_o beget_v he_o shall_v thrust_v he_o through_o when_o he_o prophesi_v here_o we_o may_v take_v notice_n that_o the_o nigh_a alye_n and_o kindred_n of_o any_o false_a prophet_n be_v not_o to_o spare_v he_o and_o there_o be_v most_o excellent_a reason_n for_o it_o for_o if_o the_o take_v away_o of_o the_o natural_a life_n of_o any_o wan_a or_o woman_n deserve_v death_n by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o nation_n how_o much_o more_o be_v that_o punishable_a in_o any_o man_n that_o shall_v labour_v to_o destroy_v and_o poison_v the_o soul_n of_o the_o people_n which_o all_o false_a teacher_n do_v when_o they_o spread_v heresy_n and_o damnable_a doctrine_n among_o they_o and_o for_o this_o place_n out_o of_o zachariah_n it_o be_v acknowledge_v by_o the_o very_a independent_o themselves_o that_o it_o be_v a_o prophecy_n pertain_v to_o those_o that_o be_v under_o the_o gospel_n and_o belong_v unto_o all_o christian_n as_o instruct_v they_o in_o their_o duty_n what_o they_o shall_v do_v for_o the_o suppress_n of_o false_a prophet_n and_o they_o also_o do_v acknowledge_v that_o the_o establish_n of_o pure_a religion_n and_o the_o reformation_n of_o corruption_n in_o religion_n do_v much_o concern_v the_o civil_a peace_n confess_v if_o religion_n be_v corrupt_v there_o will_v be_v war_n in_o the_o gate_n and_o where_o religion_n rejoice_v the_o civil_a state_n flourish_v all_o this_o i_o say_v the_o independent_o themselves_o accord_n unto_o but_o they_o refer_v it_o and_o that_o true_o unto_o the_o civil_a magistrate_n partly_o by_o command_v and_o by_o stir_v up_o the_o church_n and_o minister_n thereof_o to_o go_v about_o it_o in_o their_o spiritual_a way_n partly_o also_o by_o civil_a punishment_n upon_o the_o wilful_a opposer_n and_o disturber_n of_o the_o same_o yea_o they_o apply_v that_o place_n out_o of_o zachariah_n quote_v by_o i_o to_o the_o time_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n as_o i_o say_v before_o and_o confess_v that_o it_o be_v prophesy_v there_o that_o in_o some_o case_n capital_a punishment_n shall_v proceed_v against_o false_a prophet_n and_o that_o by_o procurement_n of_o their_o near_a kindred_n and_o moreover_o they_o say_v that_o the_o execution_n thereof_o be_v describe_v revel_n 16._o v._n 4_o to_o the_o 7._o where_o the_o river_n and_o fountain_n of_o water_n that_o be_v the_o priest_n and_o jesuit_n that_o convey_v the_o religion_n of_o the_o sea_n of_o rome_n throughout_o the_o country_n be_v turn_v to_o blood_n that_o be_v have_v blood_n give_v they_o to_o drink_v by_o the_o civil_a magistrate_n these_o be_v the_o very_a expression_n of_o the_o independent_o themselves_o now_o if_o this_o in_o their_o opinion_n do_v hold_v true_a against_o the_o priest_n and_o jesuit_n whether_o it_o do_v not_o also_o hold_v true_a against_o all_o the_o erroneous_a and_o blasphemous_a sectary_n and_o heretical_a teacher_n that_o by_o
murder_v the_o soul_n of_o many_o thousand_o innocent_a people_n send_v they_o to_o the_o devil_n that_o i_o leave_v to_o the_o grave_a consideration_n of_o all_o those_o that_o be_v zealous_a for_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o valiant_a for_o the_o truth_n and_o to_o all_o such_o as_o desire_v to_o contend_v for_o the_o truth_n who_o ought_v ever_o to_o set_v before_o their_o eye_n the_o example_n of_o all_o those_o godly_a prince_n and_o magistrate_n the_o name_n of_o which_o be_v record_v in_o holy_a writ_n and_o in_o special_a it_o will_v be_v good_a to_o consider_v what_o asa_n and_o the_o people_n of_o his_o time_n do_v who_o praise_n be_v set_v down_o and_o what_o good_a follow_v upon_o it_o to_o the_o whole_a land_n 2_o chron._n 15._o verse_n 12_o 13._o it_o be_v say_v there_o that_o they_o enter_v into_o a_o covenant_n to_o seek_v the_o lord_n god_n of_o their_o father_n with_o all_o their_o heart_n and_o with_o all_o their_o soul_n that_o whosoever_o will_v not_o seek_v the_o lord_n god_n of_o israel_n shall_v be_v put_v to_o death_n whether_o small_a or_o great_a whether_o man_n or_o woman_n and_o they_o swear_v unto_o the_o lord_n with_o a_o loud_a voice_n and_o with_o shout_v and_o with_o trumpet_n and_o with_o cornet_n and_o all_o judah_n rejoice_v at_o the_o oath_n for_o they_o have_v swear_v with_o all_o their_o heart_n and_o seek_v he_o with_o their_o whole_a desire_n and_o he_o be_v find_v of_o they_o and_o the_o lord_n give_v they_o rest_v round_o about_o here_o we_o may_v take_v notice_n of_o these_o two_o thing_n especial_o the_o first_o that_o this_o their_o covenant_v against_o all_o such_o as_o shall_v go_v about_o to_o corrupt_a religion_n for_o the_o punish_n of_o they_o with_o death_n be_v leave_v not_o only_o for_o their_o eternal_a honour_n and_o praise_n and_o for_o our_o imitation_n but_o that_o it_o do_v so_o please_v the_o lord_n that_o he_o be_v find_v of_o they_o the_o second_o thing_n observable_a be_v that_o he_o do_v in_o a_o peculiar_a manner_n bless_v they_o and_o give_v they_o rest_v round_o about_o so_o that_o from_o thence_o we_o learn_v that_o if_o magistrate_n who_o be_v god_n minister_n and_o who_o place_n it_o be_v will_v execute_v judgement_n against_o all_o seducer_n and_o blasphemous_a teacher_n by_o this_o they_o shall_v bring_v glory_n to_o god_n and_o procure_v peace_n and_o welfare_n to_o their_o country_n and_o safety_n to_o their_o dwelling_n and_o true_o magistrate_n shall_v consider_v their_o place_n who_o be_v call_v god_n and_o therefore_o as_o god_n have_v set_v they_o a_o example_n both_o in_o exod._n 32._o and_o numb_a the_o 25._o the_o place_n above_o cite_v in_o punish_v idolator_n so_o they_o also_o shall_v follow_v he_o and_o the_o example_n of_o good_a king_n asa_n in_o so_o do_v they_o may_v remember_v also_o they_o be_v call_v nurse_v father_n and_o nurse_v mother_n and_o therefore_o as_o nurse_v and_o tender_a father_n and_o mother_n will_v not_o suffer_v corrupt_a and_o poisonous_a food_n be_v give_v to_o their_o child_n but_o kill_v serpent_n and_o scorpion_n and_o such_o venomous_a creature_n and_o destroy_v they_o that_o may_v hurt_v they_o so_o they_o likewise_o shall_v labour_v in_o their_o particular_a place_n to_o root_v out_o all_o that_o generation_n of_o viper_n that_o poison_v the_o people_n with_o their_o heretical_a and_o blasphemous_a doctrine_n the_o magistrate_n shall_v remember_v also_o that_o they_o be_v call_v pastor_n now_o no_o godly_a and_o careful_a pastor_n will_v suffer_v wolf_n to_o come_v into_o their_o fold_n to_o worry_v and_o destroy_v their_o sheep_n how_o diligent_a ought_v they_o likewise_o to_o be_v to_o keep_v out_o those_o ravenous_a wolf_n though_o they_o come_v in_o sheep_n clothing_n out_o of_o their_o several_a pasture_n that_o will_v destroy_v the_o soul_n of_o all_o their_o sheep_n all_o these_o thing_n i_o say_v all_o magistrate_n shall_v lay_v to_o heart_n and_o due_o consider_v for_o their_o place_n it_o be_v to_o who_o god_n have_v commit_v the_o sword_n and_o who_o ought_v to_o watch_v over_o the_o people_n for_o good_a and_o who_o neglect_v of_o their_o duty_n will_v be_v lay_v to_o their_o charge_n and_o who_o be_v to_o answer_v for_o it_o before_o god_n if_o through_o their_o con_fw-mi nivence_n or_o negligence_n any_o evil_a happen_v to_o the_o people_n but_o if_o they_o shall_v wilful_o suffer_v the_o corruption_n of_o the_o true_a religion_n and_o allow_v of_o a_o toleration_n of_o all_o religion_n how_o much_o will_v this_o provoke_v the_o lord_n to_o anger_v against_o the_o nation_n we_o may_v see_v how_o zealous_a good_a nehemiah_n be_v in_o his_o time_n and_o how_o undaunt_o he_o stand_v to_o the_o cause_n of_o god_n say_v shall_v such_o a_o man_n as_o i_o be_o fly_v he_o be_v resolve_v to_o maintain_v god_n truth_n which_o be_v his_o honour_n to_o eternity_n and_o for_o all_o magistrate_n imitation_n nehemiah_n the_o 13._o verse_n 23_o 24_o 25._o who_o but_o see_v that_o the_o jew_n have_v marry_v wife_n of_o ashdod_n of_o ammon_n and_o of_o moab_n and_o but_o hear_v their_o child_n speak_v half_o ●in_v the_o speech_n of_o ashdod_n and_o can_v not_o speak_v in_o the_o jew_n language_n but_o according_a to_o the_o language_n of_o each_o people_n it_o be_v relate_v there_o that_o he_o content_v with_o they_o and_o revile_v or_o curse_v they_o and_o smite_v certain_a of_o they_o and_o pluck_v off_o their_o hair_n and_o make_v they_o swear_v by_o god_n say_v you_o shall_v not_o give_v your_o daughter_n unto_o their_o son_n nor_o take_v their_o daughter_n unto_o your_o son_n or_o for_o yourselves_o do_v not_o solomon_n king_n of_o israel_n sin_n by_o these_o thing_n who_o be_v belove_v of_o god_n nevertheless_o even_o he_o do_v outlandish_a woman_n cause_n to_o sin_n shall_v we_o then_o hearken_v unto_o you_o say_v he_o to_o do_v all_o this_o great_a evil_n to_o transgress_v against_o our_o god_n in_o marry_v of_o strange_a wife_n here_o we_o have_v a_o example_n and_o pattern_n for_o all_o christian_a magistrate_n and_o such_o as_o be_v in_o authority_n to_o follow_v for_o this_o be_v pen_v for_o our_o instruction_n upon_o who_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n be_v come_v this_o example_n of_o nehemiah_n be_v wont_v great_o to_o be_v urge_v upon_o christian_n for_o imitation_n and_o that_o by_o those_o of_o the_o congregationall_a way_n and_o therefore_o i_o hope_v they_o will_v not_o now_o be_v displease_v that_o i_o make_v use_n of_o it_o upon_o the_o like_a occasion_n and_o magistrate_n be_v call_v upon_o by_o they_o to_o follow_v the_o pattern_n of_o noble_a and_o glorious_a nehemiah_n in_o make_v a_o through_o reformation_n in_o all_o thing_n and_o for_o suppress_v of_o all_o error_n and_o innovation_n in_o religion_n and_o in_o that_o he_o will_v not_o suffer_v or_o tolerate_v any_o strange_a religion_n among_o they_o for_o he_o but_o hear_v they_o speak_v the_o language_n of_o ashdod_n curse_v they_o and_o revile_v they_o and_o smite_v they_o and_o beat_v they_o also_o for_o it_o and_o tear_v off_o the_o very_a hair_n of_o their_o face_n so_o that_o he_o lay_v severe_a corporal_a punishment_n upon_o they_o for_o it_o now_o if_o he_o will_v not_o suffer_v they_o in_o his_o sight_n and_o hear_v to_o speak_v the_o language_n of_o ashdod_n he_o will_v never_o have_v grant_v they_o a_o toleration_n of_o all_o religion_n for_o he_o be_v another_o joshua_n full_o resolve_v that_o he_o and_o his_o household_n and_o all_o that_o be_v under_o his_o command_n shall_v serve_v the_o lord_n and_o he_o only_o and_o that_o after_o his_o way_n and_o he_o sufficient_o there_o declare_v his_o detestation_n against_o a_o toleration_n of_o all_o religion_n or_o of_o give_v the_o people_n a_o indulgence_n to_o serve_v god_n which_o way_n they_o think_v best_a and_o to_o use_v the_o liberty_n of_o their_o conscience_n for_o he_o make_v they_o all_o to_o embrace_v the_o true_a religion_n and_o to_o worship_n god_n according_a as_o he_o have_v command_v in_o his_o holy_a word_n which_o be_v mean_v by_o that_o he_o make_v they_o swear_v by_o god_n which_o as_o all_o the_o learned_a know_v be_v ever_o in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n to_o be_v understand_v of_o the_o true_a worship_n of_o god_n now_o we_o see_v godly_a nehemiah_n not_o only_o urge_v they_o to_o embrace_v the_o true_a religion_n and_o to_o serve_v god_n according_a as_o he_o himself_o have_v appoint_v by_o argument_n and_o reason_n set_v before_o they_o the_o misery_n and_o calamity_n that_o come_v upon_o the_o whole_a land_n by_o solomon_n tolerate_v of_o all_o religion_n among_o they_o but_o gallant_a nehemiah_n revile_v they_o as_o if_o he_o say_v you_o rogue_n do_v you_o speak_v in_o the_o language_n of_o ashdod_n and_o then_o cudgel_v they_o
etc._n etc._n and_o of_o what_o even_o of_o a_o toleration_n of_o any_o religion_n but_o the_o true_a religion_n and_o of_o that_o religion_n christ_n have_v teach_v we_o by_o what_o authority_n soever_o it_o come_v ratify_v unto_o we_o whether_o by_o ecclesiastical_a or_o civil_a yea_o though_o it_o be_v impose_v upon_o we_o by_o the_o command_n of_o king_n and_o ruler_n themselves_o for_o say_v christ_n our_o master_n i_o charge_v you_o all_o take_v heed_n and_o beware_v of_o the_o leven_a of_o the_o pharisee_n and_o of_o the_o leven_a of_o herod_n now_o by_o leven_a our_o saviour_n understand_v all_o tradition_n and_o doctrine_n of_o man_n and_o enjoin_v all_o his_o disciple_n to_o beware_v of_o they_o and_o command_v they_o to_o take_v heed_n of_o they_o and_o not_o to_o tolerate_v they_o among_o they_o and_o that_o this_o be_v his_o good_a will_n and_o pleasure_n he_o have_v ratify_v it_o when_o he_o be_v in_o heaven_n for_o write_v unto_o the_o church_n of_o thyatira_n revel_v 2._o verse_n 20._o i_o have_v say_v he_o a_o few_o thing_n against_o thou_o because_o thou_o suffer_v that_o woman_n jezabel_n which_o call_v herself_o a_o prophetess_n to_o teach_v and_o seduce_v my_o servant_n etc._n etc._n here_o christ_n have_v declare_v his_o will_n and_o good_a pleasure_n and_o how_o much_o he_o displease_v with_o that_o church_n that_o she_o suffer_v those_o false_a teacher_n and_o seducer_n among_o they_o and_o that_o they_o but_o connive_v at_o they_o and_o pronounce_v fearful_a judgement_n against_o both_o that_o church_n and_o the_o church_n of_o pergamos_n and_o that_o of_o laodicea_n for_o tolerate_v the_o doctrine_n of_o baalam_n the_o nicolaitan_n and_o for_o suffer_v those_o lukewarm_a christian_n among_o they_o so_o that_o there_o be_v nothing_o that_o christ_n abhor_v more_o than_o a_o toleration_n of_o all_o religion_n but_o that_o we_o may_v far_o yet_o know_v what_o the_o good_a will_n and_o pleasure_n of_o god_n be_v concern_v this_o point_n let_v we_o hear_v paul_n who_o make_v know_v the_o whole_a counsel_n of_o god_n to_o his_o church_n act._n 20._o now_o he_o in_o the_o 17._o of_o the_o act_n declare_v the_o will_n of_o god_n touch_v this_o matter_n for_o after_o that_o he_o have_v reprove_v the_o athenian_n for_o their_o superstition_n ver_fw-la 22._o and_o undertake_v to_o teach_v they_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o true_a god_n who_o they_o ignorant_o worship_v and_o the_o right_a way_n of_o worship_v and_o serve_v he_o and_o inform_v they_o that_o he_o be_v not_o worship_v with_o man_n hand_n that_o be_v with_o any_o of_o their_o invention_n and_o with_o what_o way_n or_o in_o what_o manner_n they_o think_v fit_a god_n say_v he_o be_v not_o to_o be_v worship_v after_o any_o tradition_n of_o man_n but_o according_a to_o his_o own_o appointment_n and_o this_o he_o challenge_v by_o right_a from_o all_o man_n as_o be_v the_o absolute_a lord_n of_o they_o all_o for_o he_o make_v they_o they_o be_v say_v the_o apostle_n the_o offspring_n of_o god_n and_o his_o generation_n and_o they_o live_v in_o he_o and_o move_v in_o he_o and_o have_v their_o be_v in_o he_o and_o their_o breath_n and_o life_n from_o he_o yea_o say_v the_o apostle_n he_o have_v determine_v the_o time_n before_o appoint_v and_o the_o bound_n of_o their_o habitation_n now_o god_n say_v he_o have_v give_v you_o all_o these_o thing_n that_o you_o shall_v seek_v the_o lord_n that_o be_v that_o you_o shall_v worship_v he_o as_o he_o be_v your_o lord_n and_o king_n and_o to_o who_o all_o honour_n and_o service_n of_o right_n be_v due_a now_o then_o as_o we_o be_v his_o offspring_n we_o must_v not_o think_v of_o god_n after_o our_o fantasy_n and_o set_v up_o such_o a_o worship_n as_o please_v ourselves_o or_o allow_v of_o any_o kind_n or_o way_n of_o worship_v god_n that_o man_n please_v to_o follow_v as_o you_o superstitious_o do_v at_o athens_n not_o say_v the_o apostle_n god_n will_v be_v worship_v after_o his_o own_o way_n and_o after_o his_o own_o appointment_n and_o howsoever_o god_n wink_v at_o the_o time_n of_o this_o ignorance_n yet_o now_o he_o command_v all_o man_n every_o where_o to_o repent_v that_o be_v to_o set_v up_o the_o true_a religion_n and_o to_o worship_v he_o after_o one_o way_n for_o say_v he_o all_o the_o nation_n be_v now_o to_o set_v up_o one_o way_n of_o worship_n and_o if_o they_o will_v not_o obey_v this_o lord_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o embrace_v that_o one_o and_o only_o true_a religion_n that_o i_o teach_v and_o preach_v unto_o you_o than_o i_o tell_v you_o plain_o that_o as_o god_n have_v appoint_v a_o day_n wherein_o he_o will_v judge_v the_o world_n in_o righteousness_n by_o christ_n jesus_n if_o you_o will_v not_o set_v up_o his_o true_a worship_n and_o the_o true_a religion_n and_o the_o right_a way_n of_o serve_v he_o but_o will_v tolerate_v all_o manner_n of_o religion_n among_o you_o still_o as_o former_o you_o have_v do_v and_o give_v liberty_n to_o every_o man_n to_o serve_v god_n after_o his_o own_o will_n and_o pleasure_n and_o not_o according_a to_o this_o good_a will_n and_o pleasure_n of_o god_n you_o shall_v be_v eternal_o damn_v for_o this_o be_v the_o meaning_n of_o the_o apostle_n so_o that_o the_o will_n of_o god_n must_v be_v our_o rule_n for_o worship_n and_o not_o poland_n and_o transsylvania_n the_o will_n of_o god_n say_v the_o apostle_n must_v be_v that_o we_o must_v follow_v in_o worship_v and_o serve_v he_o now_o when_o by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n that_o acceptable_a and_o perfect_a will_n of_o his_o we_o be_v teach_v that_o he_o be_v displease_v with_o his_o people_n the_o jew_n for_o tolerate_v of_o all_o religion_n among_o they_o and_o that_o he_o be_v high_o offend_v with_o those_o christian_n church_n in_o asia_n for_o tolerate_v the_o doctrine_n of_o balaam_n and_o jezabel_n we_o be_v sufficient_o teach_v and_o instruct_v that_o christian_n ought_v not_o to_o tolerate_v any_o other_o religion_n but_o that_o which_o christ_n the_o only_a king_n and_o lawgiver_n of_o his_o church_n have_v teach_v we_o and_o that_o whosoever_o shall_v take_v that_o authority_n upon_o they_o to_o tolerate_v all_o religion_n will_v be_v find_v fighter_n against_o god_n and_o such_o as_o deserve_o will_v bring_v down_o his_o judgement_n upon_o the_o land_n by_o it_o for_o if_o but_o connive_v at_o evil_n and_o consent_v to_o it_o be_v a_o thing_n displease_v unto_o god_n how_o will_v the_o tolerate_n of_o it_o by_o a_o law_n be_v abominable_a unto_o his_o sacred_a and_o divine_a majesty_n for_o this_o be_v to_o establish_v iniquity_n by_o a_o law_n we_o be_v teach_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n that_o the_o consent_n with_o a_o thief_n make_v a_o man_n as_o guilty_a before_o god_n as_o the_o act_n of_o thievery_n psal_n 50_o and_o that_o they_o that_o assent_v unto_o jezabel_n in_o kill_v the_o prophet_n make_v themselves_o all_o as_o guilty_a as_o jezabel_n herself_o and_o that_o the_o heathen_a roman_n rom._n 1._o verse_n 32._o who_o know_v the_o judgement_n of_o god_n that_o they_o which_o commit_v such_o thing_n be_v worthy_a of_o death_n not_o only_o do_v the_o same_o but_o consent_n with_o they_o that_o do_v they_o make_v themselves_o as_o equal_o guilty_a as_o the_o actor_n of_o they_o as_o paul_n in_o his_o bill_n and_o information_n put_v up_o in_o the_o court_n of_o heaven_n against_o they_o sufficient_o declare_v the_o same_o do_v elias_n in_o his_o bill_n of_o information_n against_o the_o people_n in_o his_o time_n accuse_v they_o all_o as_o equal_o guilty_a of_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o destroy_a religion_n as_o jezabel_n and_o only_o because_o they_o consent_v unto_o it_o they_o say_v elias_n have_v kill_v thy_o prophet_n and_o have_v break_v down_o thy_o altar_n which_o they_o all_o the_o people_n that_o assent_v unto_o she_o as_o well_o as_o the_o officer_n and_o executioner_n and_o so_o our_o saviour_n in_o his_o time_n accuse_v the_o people_n as_o well_o as_o herod_n for_o slay_v of_o john_n the_o baptist_n say_v they_o have_v do_v to_o he_o whatsoever_o they_o please_v they_o which_o they_o all_o the_o noble_n that_o sit_v at_o table_n with_o herod_n that_o do_v not_o dissuade_v herod_n from_o that_o bloody_a and_o tyrannical_a act_n and_o all_o the_o people_n that_o like_v well_o of_o it_o the_o sin_n of_o this_o nation_n who_o assent_v unto_o the_o bloody_a decree_n and_o censure_v give_v in_o the_o high-commission-court_n and_o in_o the_o star-chamber_n and_o in_o all_o other_o unjust_a court_n the_o people_n that_o assent_v unto_o all_o their_o cruel_a censure_n against_o god_n people_n and_o like_v well_o of_o it_o be_v as_o equal_o guilty_a who_o will_v ordinary_o say_v that_o have_v they_o be_v judge_n
by_o and_o therefore_o you_o in_o this_o have_v not_o set_v he_o upon_o his_o throne_n and_o to_o that_o hell-hatcht_a charge_n which_o you_o have_v bring_v against_o i_o cunning_o asperse_v i_o for_o a_o scandalous_a walker_n etc._n etc._n i_o answer_v that_o as_o the_o devil_n speak_v in_o the_o subtle_a serpent_n and_o belie_v god_n himself_o to_o our_o first_o parent_n so_o the_o inventor_n of_o this_o notorious_a untruth_n who_o ever_o they_o be_v be_v of_o a_o serpentine_a nature_n into_o who_o the_o devil_n be_v enter_v and_o have_v a_o full_a possession_n speak_v in_o they_o be_v subtle_a and_o active_a instrument_n to_o report_n lie_v and_o i_o be_o confident_a that_o upon_o due_a and_o just_a examination_n it_o will_v appear_v they_o be_v some_o shameless_a infamous_a creature_n set_v a_o work_n by_o the_o devil_n and_o prompt_v by_o sectary_n to_o defame_v i_o that_o there_o by_o the_o gospel_n my_o holy_a profession_n and_o the_o way_n of_o god_n may_v be_v scandalize_v in_o blemish_v my_o good_a name_n and_o to_o have_v it_o with_o the_o more_o credit_n receive_v he_o have_v so_o order_v that_o you_o must_v be_v the_o herald_n to_o proclaim_v their_o devilish_a defamation_n yet_o notwithstanding_o my_o innocence_n triumph_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o black_a mouth_n slander_n be_v full_o assure_v that_o god_n in_o his_o due_a time_n will_v make_v a_o clear_a discovery_n of_o their_o wicked_a design_n for_o he_o be_v above_o the_o devil_n and_o before_o the_o lord_n that_o see_v the_o secret_a thought_n imagination_n intention_n of_o all_o man_n in_o truth_n and_o faithfulness_n i_o speak_v it_o i_o can_v i_o do_v and_o by_o god_n grace_n ever_o shall_v wash_v my_o hand_n in_o innocence_n yea_o i_o call_v upon_o the_o righteous_a judge_n the_o god_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n who_o know_v my_o innocence_n to_o judge_v between_o you_o and_o i_o herein_o for_o god_n be_v my_o witness_n that_o i_o have_v endeavour_v to_o walk_v before_o he_o with_o a_o honest_a sincere_a faithful_a and_o upright_a heart_n ever_o since_o he_o give_v i_o the_o knowledge_n of_o himself_o and_o during_o the_o time_n i_o be_v in_o the_o estate_n of_o nature_n god_n by_o his_o prevent_n and_o restrain_v grace_n keep_v i_o from_o live_v or_o delight_v in_o such_o sin_n whereby_o any_o can_v true_o charge_v i_o for_o a_o scandalous_a walker_n therefore_o in_o the_o presence_n of_o this_o great_a god_n who_o of_o his_o free_a grace_n have_v elect_v call_v and_o justify_v i_o through_o faith_n in_o his_o son_n the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n not_o suffer_v i_o to_o turn_v aside_o neither_o to_o the_o right_a hand_n nor_o to_o the_o left_a out_o of_o the_o path_n of_o truth_n and_o that_o lead_v to_o holiness_n i_o solemn_o protest_v and_o hold_v out_o my_o protestation_n to_o the_o view_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n you_o have_v most_o injurious_o wrong_v i_o in_o proclaim_v i_o to_o be_v such_o a_o one_o for_o i_o be_o as_o blameless_a and_o free_a from_o your_o calumniation_n as_o naboth_n be_v from_o wicked_a jezabel_n desperate_a plot_n wherewith_o she_o take_v away_o his_o life_n 1_o king_n 21._o 8_o 9_o 10._o etc._n etc._n and_o as_o innocent_a as_o joseph_n from_o the_o false_a accusation_n bring_v against_o he_o by_o his_o wanton_a lascivious_a and_o shameless_a mistress_n gen._n 39_o 14_o 15_o 16_o 17_o 18_o which_o make_v i_o bold_a to_o say_v neither_o the_o devil_n any_o of_o his_o instrument_n no_o nor_o yourself_o in_o the_o word_n of_o truth_n can_v prove_v the_o thing_n whereof_o you_o have_v accuse_v i_o i_o shall_v here_o conclude_v my_o answer_n to_o this_o charge_n with_o the_o apostle_n paul_n word_n 1_o cor._n 4._o 3_o 4_o 5._o but_o with_o i_o it_o be_v a_o very_a small_a thing_n that_o i_o shall_v be_v judge_v of_o you_o or_o of_o man_n judgement_n yea_o i_o judge_v not_o my_o own_o self_n for_o i_o know_v nothing_o by_o myself_o yet_o be_o i_o not_o hereby_o justify_v but_o he_o that_o judge_v i_o be_v the_o lord_n therefore_o judge_v nothing_o before_o the_o time_n until_o the_o lord_n come_v who_o both_o will_v bring_v to_o light_v the_o hide_a thing_n of_o darkness_n and_o will_v make_v manifest_a the_o counsel_n of_o the_o heart_n and_o then_o shall_v every_o man_n have_v praise_n of_o god_n brother_n i_o have_v be_v the_o large_a in_o my_o reply_n to_o this_o particular_a because_o it_o be_v the_o foundation_n and_o main_a pillar_n that_o may_v seem_v to_o hold_v up_o all_o your_o other_o calumny_n for_o if_o you_o can_v prove_v i_o to_o be_v a_o scandalous_a walker_n to_o the_o shame_n of_o the_o very_a name_n of_o christian_a religion_n than_o man_n may_v easy_o be_v persuade_v to_o believe_v your_o whole_a charge_n but_o the_o foundation_n be_v so_o rot_v and_o unfound_a the_o superstructure_n can_v possible_o stand_v i_o now_o proceed_v to_o the_o four_o particular_a and_o my_o answer_n thereunto_o be_v that_o no_o man_n of_o truth_n worth_n and_o piety_n can_v just_o tax_v i_o either_o with_o baseness_n or_o barbarism_n for_o the_o five_o particular_a it_o be_v elevate_v very_o high_a and_o because_o you_o have_v in_o this_o exceed_o bestir_v yourself_o i_o be_o necessitate_v for_o the_o clear_n myself_o &_o to_o vindicate_v the_o truth_n of_o what_o i_o have_v write_v to_o be_v somewhat_o large_a in_o my_o reply_n that_o i_o may_v full_o answer_v the_o charge_n you_o bring_v against_o i_o therein_o which_o be_v very_o great_a viz._n you_o accuse_v i_o to_o be_v one_o of_o the_o great_a incendiary_n in_o the_o land_n and_o to_o prove_v this_o you_o quote_v two_o passage_n in_o one_o of_o my_o book_n and_o you_o bring_v they_o as_o two_o witness_n for_o the_o confirmation_n thereof_o the_o first_o be_v in_o my_o preface_n pag._n 28._o the_o second_o in_o my_o postcript_n pag._n 45._o now_o these_o two_o witness_n of_o your_o own_o say_v you_o want_v but_o a_o judge_n judicial_o to_o pronounce_v sentence_n whether_o these_o word_n be_v not_o of_o a_o incendiary_n nature_n and_o that_o in_o a_o high_a degree_n for_o who_o be_v so_o blind_a as_o do_v not_o clear_o see_v these_o fiery_a flash_n and_o flame_n to_o fly_v in_o the_o face_n of_o that_o army_n which_o god_n have_v honour_v with_o many_o crown_n of_o admirable_a victory_n both_o at_o york_n at_o naseby_n and_o at_o lamport_n with_o the_o recovery_n of_o leicester_n bridgewater_n bath_n etc._n etc._n so_o as_o god_n have_v make_v this_o despise_a army_n the_o preservative_n of_o city_n and_o country_n the_o repairer_n of_o the_o breach_n the_o restorer_n of_o the_o path_n to_o dwell_v in_o thus_o you_o brother_n this_o accusation_n have_v a_o tower_n raise_v on_o the_o same_o basis_n the_o whole_a fabric_n of_o your_o charge_n be_v found_v upon_o and_o the_o foundation_n be_v deep_a you_o dare_v build_v so_o high_a as_o if_o it_o be_v possible_a to_o overtop_n truth_n not_o fear_v the_o fall_n of_o your_o babel_n but_o god_n who_o be_v truth_n itself_o see_v the_o evil_a of_o your_o intention_n have_v confound_v your_o language_n as_o he_o do_v those_o bvilder_n who_o seek_v to_o get_v themselves_o a_o name_n gen._n 11._o 4_o 5_o 6_o 7._o and_o therefore_o it_o will_v fall_v notwithstanding_o the_o height_n of_o its_o tower_n o_o what_o a_o confuse_a relation_n have_v you_o make_v to_o prove_v i_o a_o incendiary_n i_o assure_v you_o in_o all_o you_o have_v say_v man_n of_o the_o clear_a eyesight_n nay_o be_v they_o eagle-eyed_a they_o can_v never_o discern_v any_o truth_n where_o with_o you_o make_v good_a that_o charge_n which_o you_o say_v be_v so_o conspicuous_a to_o the_o view_n of_o all_o man_n for_o those_o two_o witness_n that_o you_o produce_v thus_o they_o speak_v preface_n pag._n 28._o say_v they_o have_v the_o sword_n now_o in_o their_o hand_n and_o they_o think_v their_o party_n strong_a enough_o to_o encounter_v any_o adverse_a and_o oppose_a party_n and_o they_o profess_v they_o care_v not_o how_o soon_o they_o come_v to_o cut_v of_o throat_n and_o speak_v of_o nothing_o but_o the_o slaughter_a and_o buncher_v of_o the_o presbyterian_o and_o therefore_o there_o be_v just_a cause_n give_v we_o to_o think_v we_o may_v expect_v better_a quarter_n from_o the_o very_a enemy_n then_o from_o the_o independent_o postscript_n testify_v that_o the_o independent_o boast_v they_o have_v such_o a_o party_n in_o the_o kingdom_n if_o their_o own_o word_n may_v be_v credit_v as_o they_o now_o think_v by_o the_o sword_n to_o be_v able_a to_o make_v their_o own_o law_n and_o have_v be_v frequent_o hear_v say_v that_o they_o have_v many_o abettor_n in_o the_o assembly_n and_o in_o both_o house_n of_o parliament_n and_o in_o many_o part_n through_o the_o kingdom_n beside_o in_o all_o the_o army_n and_o they_o be_v
all_o resolve_v to_o have_v the_o liberty_n of_o their_o conscience_n or_o else_o they_o will_v make_v use_n of_o their_o sword_n which_o they_o have_v already_o in_o their_o hand_n so_o that_o most_o certain_a it_o be_v the_o religion_n of_o too_o too_o many_o of_o they_o be_v a_o mere_a faction_n etc._n etc._n now_o what_o these_o two_o have_v affirm_v can_v be_v corroborate_v by_o other_o witness_n and_o if_o in_o your_o account_n he_o be_v a_o incendiary_n that_o in_o detestation_n thereof_o have_v set_v down_o their_o word_n by_o way_n of_o repetition_n to_o discover_v the_o danger_n of_o permit_v such_o lawless_a spirit_n to_o go_v on_o in_o their_o unwarrantable_a way_n what_o great_a incendiarte_n be_v they_o that_o have_v imagine_v such_o thing_n in_o their_o heart_n and_o bold_o speak_v those_o word_n with_o their_o mouth_n for_o out_o of_o the_o abundance_n of_o the_o heart_n the_o mouth_n speak_v matth._n 12._o 34._o luke_n 6._o 45._o as_o it_o can_v be_v prove_v independent_o have_v do_v and_o so_o much_o the_o two_o witness_n you_o speak_v of_o say_v and_o no_o more_o for_o they_o accuse_v not_o that_o army_n which_o god_n have_v honour_v with_o many_o crown_n of_o admirable_a victory_n etc._n etc._n but_o you_o say_v they_o cast_v fiery_a flash_n and_o flame_n which_o do_v fly_v in_o the_o face_n of_o that_o army_n etc._n etc._n true_o this_o be_v no_o other_o but_o a_o false_a comment_n make_v by_o yourself_o from_o which_o you_o draw_v a_o evil_a inference_n and_o then_o you_o cry_v out_o as_o a_o man_n overcome_v with_o passion_n say_v these_o word_n be_v not_o to_o be_v bear_v but_o i_o leave_v say_v you_o the_o judgement_n thereof_o to_o the_o wisdom_n and_o justice_n of_o the_o parliament_n who_o former_a free_n of_o you_o extend_v not_o to_o clear_v your_o word_n from_o be_v incendiary_n thus_o far_o you_o brother_n i_o profess_v i_o be_o hearty_o sorry_a to_o see_v that_o you_o my_o quondam_a fellow_n sufferer_n shall_v so_o much_o forget_v yourself_o as_o not_o only_o bitter_o unworthy_o and_o most_o false_o thus_o to_o inveigh_v against_o i_o but_o also_o to_o insinuate_v into_o the_o parliament_n as_o if_o they_o can_v not_o manifest_v their_o wisdom_n and_o justice_n except_o they_o pass_v their_o judgement_n and_o censure_v i_o according_a to_o your_o bill_n of_o information_n this_o violent_a prosecution_n and_o your_o canterburian_a expression_n make_v not_o i_o alone_o but_o all_o other_o solid_a christian_n wonder_v at_o your_o spirit_n for_o you_o may_v please_v to_o call_v to_o mind_n how_o one_o once_o profess_v he_o will_v not_o pass_v any_o sentence_n against_o you_o my_o brother_n prynne_n and_o myself_o but_o leave_v we_o as_o he_o say_v to_o the_o wisdom_n and_o justice_n of_o the_o court_n which_o be_v in_o the_o judgement_n of_o all_o that_o hear_v his_o whole_a speech_n to_o pronounce_v we_o so_o high_o guilty_a that_o if_o the_o lord_n there_o present_a do_v not_o severe_o censure_v we_o they_o will_v show_v themselves_o neither_o wise_a nor_o just_a this_o precedent_n you_o have_v exact_o follow_v against_o i_o but_o it_o will_v never_o crown_v your_o head_n with_o honour_n and_o for_o the_o parliament_n it_o be_v their_o glory_n to_o slight_v troublesome_a informer_n for_o shall_v they_o hearken_v to_o every_o information_n invent_v and_o draw_v up_o by_o the_o unsatisfied_a and_o turbulent_a spirit_n of_o some_o independent_o it_o will_v cloud_v their_o wisdom_n and_o total_o eclipse_v the_o shine_a of_o their_o justice_n in_o our_o horizon_n but_o you_o can_v there_o obtain_v a_o order_n to_o have_v your_o bill_n take_v pro_fw-la confesso_fw-la and_o gain_v so_o much_o of_o the_o parliament_n that_o i_o shall_v not_o answer_v for_o myself_o therefore_o i_o may_v and_o will_v speak_v for_o myself_o in_o my_o just_a defence_n and_o show_v how_o unjust_o you_o have_v accuse_v i_o and_o here_o i_o deny_v your_o charge_n in_o every_o particular_a circumstance_n but_o before_o i_o return_v my_o answer_n thereunto_o you_o have_v give_v i_o such_o a_o theme_n to_o speak_v upon_o as_o the_o due_a acknowledgement_n of_o god_n goodness_n in_o raise_v we_o up_o deliverer_n when_o city_n and_o country_n be_v sore_o afflict_v and_o heavy_o oppress_v on_o every_o side_n in_o speak_v of_o god_n providentiall_a care_n and_o several_a act_n in_o way_n of_o mercy_n to_o his_o people_n i_o can_v omit_v by_o way_n of_o thankfulness_n to_o god_n and_o man_n to_o declare_v how_o that_o in_o the_o first_o place_n city_n and_o country_n be_v deep_o engage_v for_o ever_o next_o unto_o divine_a goodness_n to_o honour_n and_o high_o esteem_v those_o lord_n knight_n gentleman_n and_o citizen_n who_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o kingdom_n trouble_n like_o the_o governor_n of_o israel_n and_o the_o prince_n of_o issachar_n do_v offer_v themselves_o willing_o among_o the_o people_n judge_n 5._o 9_o 15._o who_o be_v very_o appear_v in_o the_o cause_n be_v then_o of_o such_o concernment_n that_o as_o it_o make_v the_o heart_n of_o all_o who_o be_v true_o godly_a to_o praise_n god_n for_o they_o so_o thereby_o god_n make_v they_o the_o preservative_n of_o city_n and_o country_n insomuch_o that_o upon_o serious_a consideration_n we_o shall_v find_v that_o those_o noble_a lord_n and_o all_o those_o brave_a commander_n that_o adhere_v to_o they_o who_o as_o zebulon_n and_o napthali_n jeopard_v their_o life_n unto_o the_o death_n in_o the_o high_a place_n of_o the_o field_n and_o expose_v themselves_o to_o reproach_n judge_n 5._o 18._o be_v not_o to_o be_v over_o look_v and_o their_o gallant_a undertake_n obscure_v under_o a_o sable_a cloud_n of_o unthankfulness_n nor_o to_o be_v bury_v in_o the_o grave_n of_o oblivion_n for_o when_o the_o kingdom_n be_v in_o great_a danger_n than_o god_n make_v use_v of_o they_o to_o preserve_v city_n and_o country_n raise_v a_o army_n by_o land_n and_o set_v forth_o a_o navy_n at_o sea_n under_o the_o command_n of_o the_o right_n honourable_a thrice_o illustrious_a faithful_a valiant_a and_o for_o ever_o to_o be_v high_o honour_v lord_n robert_n earl_n of_o essex_n and_o robert_n earl_n of_o warwick_n who_o he_o make_v by_o sea_n and_o land_n instrumental_a for_o the_o good_a and_o welfare_n of_o the_o kingdom_n and_o the_o truth_n be_v at_o this_o day_n neither_o preservation_n nor_o safety_n can_v have_v be_v expect_v in_o city_n and_o country_n as_o thing_n than_o stand_v have_v not_o these_o two_o renown_a lord_n and_o hero_n so_o noble_o and_o undaunt_o appear_v in_o the_o cause_n &_o undertake_v the_o charge_n and_o care_n upon_o they_o one_o to_o be_v admiral_n of_o the_o navy_n at_o sea_n the_o other_o to_o be_v general_n of_o the_o parliament_n force_n by_o land_n for_o this_o their_o undertake_n be_v in_o such_o a_o juncture_n of_o time_n that_o have_v they_o out_o of_o self_n respect_v decline_v it_o unless_o the_o lord_n by_o a_o miracle_n have_v withstand_v and_o overthrow_v our_o enemy_n city_n and_o country_n in_o all_o probability_n long_o before_o this_o time_n will_v have_v be_v overrun_v and_o possess_v by_o they_o and_o no_o man_n shall_v now_o have_v have_v peace_n in_o his_o go_v out_o or_o come_n in_o but_o by_o the_o valour_n vigilancy_n and_o faithfulness_n of_o our_o then_o noble_a admiral_n our_o sea_n be_v safeguarded_n by_o which_o mean_n foreign_a enemy_n be_v awe_v homebred_a enemy_n weaken_v by_o surprise_v many_o ship_n arm_n ammunition_n instrument_n and_o preparation_n for_o war_n which_o be_v send_v over_o into_o england_n for_o the_o destruction_n of_o city_n and_o country_n besiege_v town_n be_v by_o he_o relieve_v as_o lyme_n plymouth_n etc._n etc._n so_o that_o god_n make_v that_o noble_a lord_n by_o sea_n the_o preservative_n of_o city_n and_o country_n which_o lie_v open_a ready_a to_o be_v destroy_v by_o cruel_a and_o bloody_a enemy_n and_o as_o the_o earl_n of_o war_n wick_n by_o sea_n so_o have_v not_o the_o earl_n of_o essex_n be_v general_n of_o the_o parliament_n army_n by_o land_n be_v a_o experience_a commander_n faithful_a to_o their_o cause_n and_o with_o a_o most_o heroic_a and_o undaunted_a courage_n stand_v to_o the_o battle_n at_o edge-hill_n when_o by_o report_n whole_a regiment_n run_v away_o and_o through_o fear_n desert_v he_o there_o now_o will_v have_v be_v no_o safety_n in_o city_n and_o country_n what_o have_v become_v of_o city_n and_o country_n when_o bristol_n be_v lose_v and_o gloucester_n close_o besiege_v which_o though_o it_o be_v a_o long_a time_n even_o beyond_o expectation_n valiant_o maintain_v by_o colonel_n massie_n the_o then_o governor_n thereof_o that_o ever_o to_o be_v honour_v gentleman_n have_v it_o not_o by_o the_o care_n and_o valour_n of_o that_o noble_a lord_n be_v seasonable_o relieve_v it_o can_v not_o possible_o have_v hold_v long_o out_o
original_o and_o primary_o from_o that_o creature_n or_o from_o such_o as_o be_v as_o bad_a as_o herself_o have_v you_o ground_v your_o most_o unbrother_o and_o extra_fw-la judicall_a judgement_n against_o i_o and_o so_o you_o have_v make_v yourself_o party_n witness_n jury_n and_o judge_n in_o this_o your_o own_o cause_n and_o which_o be_v more_o have_v condemn_v one_o that_o be_v in_o your_o opinion_n without_o and_o out_o of_o your_o jurisdiction_n whereas_o paul_n have_v teach_v all_o christ_n disciple_n by_o a_o statute_n law_n from_o heaven_n that_o they_o shall_v not_o judge_v those_o that_o be_v without_o now_o you_o account_v i_o and_o all_o the_o presbyterian_o to_o be_v enemy_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o such_o saint_n as_o job_n will_v not_o set_v with_o the_o dog_n of_o his_o flock_n and_o proclaim_v we_o all_o the_o son_n of_o belial_n as_o your_o learned_a work_n can_v sufficient_o witness_v and_o therefore_o you_o account_v we_o all_o without_o and_o yet_o you_o condemn_v i_o and_o that_o in_o the_o face_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n as_o guilty_a of_o all_o those_o foul_a crime_n you_o charge_v i_o with_o whereas_o you_o have_v nothing_o to_o do_v with_o i_o i_o be_v out_o of_o your_o jurisdiction_n i_o pray_v tell_v i_o courteous_a brother_n whether_o this_o your_o proceed_n be_v to_o set_v up_o christ_n as_o king_n upon_o his_o throne_n and_o be_v judicial_o to_o condemn_v any_o brother_n when_o it_o be_v apparent_o manifest_a by_o these_o your_o action_n you_o transgress_v all_o the_o law_n of_o christ_n our_o king_n and_o trample_v they_o under_o your_o foot_n for_o christ_n have_v teach_v all_o his_o people_n and_o subject_n say_v matth._n 18._o if_o thy_o brother_n offend_v thou_o tell_v he_o of_o it_o between_o he_o and_o thou_o etc._n etc._n and_o again_o he_o have_v say_v judge_v not_o lest_o you_o be_v judge_v and_o again_o there_o shall_v be_v judgement_n without_o mercy_n to_o he_o that_o show_v no_o mercy_n again_o god_n have_v say_v he_o that_o condemn_v the_o righteous_a and_o he_o that_o justify_v the_o wicked_a they_o be_v both_o a_o abomination_n to_o the_o lord_n whether_o therefore_o by_o all_o these_o your_o proceed_n against_o i_o you_o have_v not_o violate_v all_o these_o most_o holy_a law_n and_o statute_n i_o shall_v leave_v to_o the_o judgement_n of_o other_o brother_n you_o may_v remember_v in_o the_o 17._o page_n of_o your_o book_n speak_v there_o what_o you_o will_v do_v when_o you_o come_v to_o my_o postscript_n which_o you_o have_v fine_o perform_v you_o ask_v i_o whether_o or_o no_o when_o you_o make_v mention_n of_o it_o my_o mind_n do_v not_o misgive_v i_o your_o word_n be_v these_o which_o when_o i_o mention_v here_o say_v you_o do_v not_o your_o mind_n misgive_v you_o for_o answer_v i_o tell_v you_o no_o for_o i_o be_o able_a to_o prove_v every_o word_n of_o that_o book_n by_o sufficient_a witness_n and_o out_o of_o the_o very_a independent_o writing_n yea_o their_o daily_a practice_n have_v make_v good_a every_o period_n of_o it_o and_o so_o far_o i_o be_o that_o my_o mind_n shall_v misgive_v i_o at_o the_o mention_n of_o it_o for_o do_v my_o duty_n that_o i_o will_v with_o all_o speed_n print_v it_o again_o with_o some_o little_a enlargement_n concern_v your_o new-light_n and_o other_o of_o your_o grollery_n but_o this_o by_o the_o way_n but_o because_o brother_n you_o take_v that_o liberty_n to_o propound_v now_o and_o then_o question_n to_o i_o i_o will_v here_o also_o use_v the_o same_o freedom_n with_o you_o therefore_o tell_v i_o i_o pray_v the_o next_o time_n i_o hear_v from_o you_o whether_o or_o no_o your_o mind_n do_v not_o misgive_v you_o when_o i_o mention_v your_o book_n and_o when_o you_o think_v what_o you_o have_v do_v against_o i_o in_o thus_o condemn_v i_o and_o adjudgeing_a a_o innocent_a man_n and_o your_o quondam_a fellow-sufferer_n brother_n have_v you_o to_o deal_v with_o some_o man_n he_o will_v recriminate_a which_o will_v not_o be_v for_o your_o honour_n but_o for_o the_o present_a i_o content_v myself_o to_o have_v declare_v my_o innocency_n only_o by_o the_o way_n consider_v what_o you_o do_v to_o my_o reverend_a brother_n master_n george_n walker_n a_o man_n to_o who_o you_o be_v so_o much_o engage_v to_o and_o when_o i_o mention_v he_o do_v not_o your_o heart_n misgive_v you_o but_o enough_o of_o this_o now_o before_o i_o conclude_v this_o my_o parley_n with_o you_o i_o will_v say_v thus_o much_o concern_v your_o new_a court_n in_o your_o new_a gather_a church_n if_o this_o be_v your_o way_n of_o proceed_n there_o to_o be_v witness_n party_n jury_n and_o judge_n in_o your_o own_o cause_n and_o when_o you_o have_v give_v sentence_n against_o the_o innocent_a if_o there_o be_v no_o appeal_n then_o your_o court_n be_v worse_o and_o more_o tyrannical_a than_o that_o of_o the_o high_a commission_n or_o star-chamber_n and_o for_o aught_o i_o know_v all_o such_o arbitrary_a court_n as_o your_o be_v and_o all_o such_o arbitrary_a and_o unjust_a judge_n as_o you_o be_v may_v as_o well_o be_v question_v censure_v and_o put_v down_o for_o all_o these_o your_o illegal_a unjust_a and_o extrajudicall_a proceed_n as_o either_o they_o or_o any_o other_o tyrannical_a court_n be_v and_o true_o it_o concern_v the_o whole_a kingdom_n now_o serious_o to_o look_v about_o they_o and_o to_o have_v a_o special_a eye_n to_o your_o jndependent_a proceed_n and_o judgement_n for_o if_o they_o be_v not_o timely_o look_v unto_o all_o the_o repair_n of_o our_o breach_n and_o all_o the_o restore_n of_o our_o path_n to_o dwell_v in_o which_o you_o make_v mention_n of_o will_v be_v no_o such_o thing_n to_o the_o poor_a presbyterian_o who_o can_v already_o pass_v quiet_o in_o the_o street_n for_o you_o nor_o any_o man_n avoid_v your_o unjust_a censure_n nor_o the_o filth_n both_o of_o your_o tongue_n and_o pen_n which_o you_o cast_v in_o our_o face_n every_o step_n we_o go_v the_o lord_n rebuke_v you_o for_o these_o your_o revile_n true_o brother_n i_o see_v a_o divine_a hand_n of_o justice_n against_o you_o in_o many_o passage_n though_o you_o look_v lofty_o and_o speak_v great_a swell_a word_n in_o all_o which_o you_o breathe_v out_o hell_n and_o your_o own_o shame_n the_o lord_n i_o hope_v in_o time_n will_v discover_v unto_o you_o all_o your_o vanity_n and_o sinfulness_n i_o will_v say_v thus_o much_o of_o you_o that_o while_o you_o use_v the_o sharpness_n of_o your_o part_n against_o the_o common_a enemy_n you_o be_v very_o serviceable_a to_o the_o church_n of_o god_n but_o now_o turn_v the_o edge_n of_o they_o against_o your_o christian_a brethren_n you_o have_v through_o their_o side_n both_o wound_v yourself_o and_o all_o those_o of_o your_o party_n as_o i_o be_o most_o assure_a they_o will_v all_o assert_v yea_o i_o can_v ascertain_v you_o of_o this_o that_o it_o be_v exceed_o admire_v by_o many_o that_o you_o have_v be_v some_o year_n in_o captivity_n under_o the_o prelate_n tyranny_n shall_v continue_v such_o a_o truant_n in_o the_o school_n of_o affliction_n as_o not_o yet_o to_o have_v learn_v the_o lesson_n of_o patience_n so_o that_o you_o can_v digest_v a_o merry_a word_n or_o but_o a_o conceive_a jest_n but_o this_o they_o be_v most_o of_o all_o strange_v at_o that_o out_o of_o the_o height_n and_o greatness_n of_o your_o spirit_n you_o will_v strike_v your_o enemy_n though_o it_o be_v through_o the_o side_n of_o religion_n and_o the_o christian_a cause_n and_o true_o this_o your_o deal_n with_o all_o your_o christian_a brethren_n especial_o with_o myself_o call_v for_o deep_a and_o serious_a repentance_n at_o your_o hand_n for_o my_o part_n i_o free_o forgive_v you_o and_o do_v profess_v it_o be_v a_o grief_n unto_o my_o soul_n that_o you_o have_v draw_v i_o out_o with_o such_o violence_n in_o force_v i_o to_o encounter_v with_o you_o by_o name_n it_o be_v true_a the_o erroneous_a way_n opinion_n and_o false_a light_n under_o the_o name_n of_o new_a late_o hold_v forth_o i_o do_v and_o can_v but_o write_v against_o they_o be_v contrary_a to_o sacred_a writ_n yet_o you_o my_o brother_n and_o quondam_a fellow_n sufferer_n i_o reverence_v and_o do_v ever_o love_n honour_n and_o esteem_v and_o have_v it_o not_o be_v to_o wipe_v off_o those_o black_a reproach_n wherewith_o you_o have_v labour_v to_o besmear_v i_o all_o over_o make_v i_o appear_v to_o the_o world_n as_o a_o man_n spot_a and_o defile_v with_o scandalous_a walk_n a_o hypocrite_n a_o persecutor_n a_o mad_a man_n etc._n etc._n i_o profess_v out_o of_o tender_a respect_n to_o your_o person_n and_o suffering_n as_o i_o have_v hitherto_o spare_v your_o name_n so_o i_o will_v now_o have_v over_o look_v your_o false_a aspersion_n but_o serious_o consider_v
protestant_a profession_n he_o shall_v have_v be_v so_o far_o from_o suffer_v for_o it_o as_o they_o will_v not_o only_o great_o have_v honour_v he_o but_o also_o high_o have_v reward_v he_o for_o his_o endeavour_n and_o this_o that_o i_o now_o write_v i_o be_o able_a to_o prove_v by_o a_o cloud_n of_o witness_n and_o my_o unjust_a suffering_n in_o their_o opinion_n make_v i_o find_v more_o favour_n among_o all_o the_o governor_n that_o be_v papist_n which_o i_o do_v ever_o acknowledge_v for_o a_o singular_a courtesy_n from_o they_o then_o ever_o i_o find_v from_o protestant_a gaoler_n and_o therefore_o whereas_o the_o independent_o do_v accuse_v i_o for_o the_o great_a incendiary_n of_o the_o kingdom_n all_o man_n may_v see_v they_o speak_v as_o untrue_o so_o most_o malicious_o etc._n etc._n now_o these_o be_v my_o word_n and_o herein_o be_v observable_a first_o that_o as_o i_o say_v i_o have_v be_v clear_v by_o both_o house_n of_o parliament_n from_o be_v a_o incendiary_n so_o i_o mention_v not_o commend_v or_o speak_v of_o the_o cavalier_n for_o their_o undertake_n i_o only_o say_v many_o of_o the_o brave_a gentleman_n in_o the_o king_n army_n have_v also_o clear_v i_o from_o that_o aspersion_n be_v convince_v that_o my_o suffering_n be_v most_o unjust_a second_o that_o i_o say_v many_o of_o the_o brave_a gentleman_n i_o speak_v not_o of_o all_o the_o cavalier_n in_o the_o king_n army_n but_o you_o silence_v my_o word_n and_o omit_v to_o show_v the_o cause_n which_o induce_v i_o there_o to_o speak_v of_o they_o make_v your_o complaint_n in_o general_n say_v he_o commend_v the_o king_n cavalier_n for_o brave_a gentleman_n three_o in_o my_o forecited_a word_n i_o plain_o set_v down_o the_o reason_n which_o move_v the_o popish_a cavaiier_n to_o show_v i_o favour_n namely_o because_o they_o be_v full_o persuade_v that_o i_o have_v write_v so_o much_o in_o defence_n of_o the_o protestant_a religion_n which_o be_v here_o establish_v have_v suffer_v most_o unjust_o and_o contrary_a to_o the_o law_n of_o this_o kingdom_n for_o my_o own_o part_n i_o look_v to_o a_o high_a hand_n in_o it_o but_o this_o be_v the_o reason_n that_o move_v they_o to_o demean_v themselves_o courteous_o towards_o i_o now_o who_o so_o deaf_a as_o they_o that_o will_v not_o hear_v and_o who_o so_o blind_a as_o they_o that_o will_v not_o see_v for_o whosoever_o will_v hear_v see_v and_o read_v what_o i_o have_v write_v and_o then_o speak_v true_o they_o can_v but_o say_v that_o be_v you_o not_o resolve_v for_o the_o vent_n of_o yourself_o to_o pretend_v ignorance_n the_o reason_n there_o lay_v down_o may_v have_v inform_v and_o satisfy_v you_o and_o so_o have_v stop_v the_o mouth_n of_o your_o causeless_a query_n you_o have_v as_o little_a reason_n to_o question_n and_o examine_v i_o upon_o such_o interrogatory_n as_o you_o have_v for_o complain_v of_o i_o for_o commend_v the_o king_n cavalier_n and_o for_o the_o false_a calumny_n which_o throughout_o your_o book_n you_o have_v load_v i_o withal_o but_o by_o these_o you_o discover_v your_o spirit_n and_o what_o you_o aim_v at_o to_o say_v no_o more_o therefore_o i_o will_v give_v a_o more_o full_a answer_n to_o they_o and_o first_o to_o your_o complaint_n i_o say_v that_o to_o affirm_v there_o be_v many_o of_o the_o king_n cavalier_n brave_a gentleman_n be_v a_o truth_n and_o all_o ingenuous_a man_n that_o have_v be_v among_o they_o will_v confess_v they_o have_v meet_v with_o many_o of_o who_o it_o may_v be_v say_v it_o be_v ten_o thousand_o thousand_o pity_n that_o such_o brave_a gentleman_n shall_v be_v so_o seduce_v and_o mislead_v as_o to_o appear_v in_o so_o bad_a a_o cause_n and_o further_o for_o myself_o know_v i_o be_o not_o ashamed_a nor_o afraid_a to_o confess_v that_o popish_a cavalier_n do_v use_v i_o courteous_o and_o that_o i_o may_v not_o be_v ungrateful_a to_o god_n nor_o man_n i_o then_o do_v now_o do_v and_o ever_o shall_v acknowledge_v that_o i_o find_v more_o favour_n from_o some_o of_o they_o which_o i_o esteem_v a_o singular_a courtesy_n then_o ever_o i_o find_v from_o protestant_a gaoler_n therefore_o as_o to_o the_o glo●y_n of_o ●od_n i_o there_o make_v mention_n of_o it_o so_o i_o shall_v here_o set_v down_o the_o particular_n and_o enlarge_v myself_o to_o show_v forth_o god_n goodness_n unto_o i_o therein_o for_o by_o his_o gracious_a assistance_n i_o will_v never_o cease_v to_o declare_v how_o that_o after_o i_o have_v be_v keep_v in_o the_o dungeon_n seven_o day_n and_o night_n in_o york_n castle_n and_o for_o a_o year_n and_o a_o half_a undergo_v great_a inhumanity_n be_v cruel_o use_v uncivil_o and_o most_o unsufferable_o abuse_v by_o a_o profess_a protestant_a gaoler_n there_o a_o length_n by_o the_o command_n of_o the_o earl_n of_o newcastle_n on_o purpose_n if_o possible_a to_o augment_v my_o misery_n i_o be_v all_o on_o a_o sudden_a remove_v from_o york_n goal_n to_o hemsley_n castle_n in_o which_o he_o intend_v evil_a towards_o i_o but_o the_o lord_n turn_v it_o to_o good_a and_o give_v i_o favour_n in_o the_o eye_n of_o a_o profist_n papist_n colonel_n irington_n by_o name_n the_o governor_n of_o that_o castle_n who_o with_o all_o in_o his_o family_n use_v i_o and_o my_o servant_n very_o courteous_o he_o supply_v i_o with_o necessary_n and_o that_o free_o and_o demean_v himself_o unto_o i_o in_o every_o respect_n as_o a_o gentleman_n while_o i_o remain_v his_o prisoner_n which_o be_v but_o one_o month_n for_o when_o my_o adversary_n hear_v thereof_o perceive_v their_o design_n be_v frustrate_v they_o forthwith_o remove_v i_o to_o knaseb●ough_a castle_n the_o governor_n and_o his_o deputy_n the_o captain_n thereof_o be_v profess_v protestant_n where_o although_o in_o some_o thing_n i_o be_v not_o so_o inhumane_o abuse_v as_o in_o york_n goal_n yet_o there_o i_o be_v keep_v close_a prisoner_n again_o and_o i_o assure_v you_o i_o find_v no_o such_o courteous_a usage_n as_o i_o receive_v from_o the_o other_o gentleman_n now_o for_o my_o part_n i_o be_o so_o far_o from_o be_v conscious_a to_o myself_o that_o i_o have_v do_v evil_a in_o make_v mention_n hereof_o as_o by_o your_o complaint_n you_o will_v infer_v that_o i_o then_o do_v and_o still_o do_v hold_v myself_o bind_v in_o conscience_n upon_o all_o occasion_n to_o speak_v of_o the_o ●_z of_o my_o god_n unto_o i_o and_o to_o make_v manifest_a the_o mighty_a power_n of_o the_o lord_n jehovah_n that_o so_o for_o time_n to_o come_v if_o any_o who_o fear_v his_o name_n shall_v be_v environ_v about_o with_o enemy_n trouble_v on_o every_o side_n and_o cast_v into_o the_o depth_n of_o misery_n in_o man_n imagination_n as_o i_o have_v be_v yet_o by_o the_o many_o experience_n which_o i_o have_v have_v of_o god_n fatherly_a mercy_n the_o heavenly_a soul-ravishing_a and_o spirit-reviving_a comfort_n wherewith_o the_o lord_n have_v strengthen_v and_o support_v i_o in_o my_o great_a calamity_n they_o may_v be_v encourage_v to_o maintain_v their_o integrity_n and_o be_v confident_a of_o his_o never_o fail_a goodness_n mercy_n and_o love_a kindness_n unto_o they_o for_o though_o in_o my_o remove_n i_o can_v expect_v nothing_o but_o increase_v of_o misery_n to_o the_o outward_a man_n yet_o to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n i_o speak_v it_o i_o find_v at_o that_o very_a instant_n as_o at_o other_o time_n the_o lord_n mighty_o to_o uphold_v my_o spirit_n fill_v i_o with_o such_o inward_a comfort_n full_a assurance_n of_o support_v mercy_n and_o that_o his_o grace_n be_v sufficient_a for_o i_o and_o his_o strength_n will_v be_v make_v perfect_a in_o weakness_n that_o in_o the_o strength_n of_o my_o god_n i_o go_v willing_o and_o cheerful_o not_o fear_v what_o man_n can_v do_v unto_o i_o and_o when_o i_o be_v deliver_v to_o colonel_n irington_n to_o who_o the_o foresay_a earl_n have_v send_v i_o he_o in_o my_o hear_n read_v the_o warrant_n which_o he_o have_v receive_v from_o he_o wherein_o he_o be_v strait_o command_v to_o keep_v i_o close_a prisoner_n and_o not_o to_o suffer_v any_o to_o see_v or_o speak_v with_o i_o but_o god_n counter-manded_n this_o command_n and_o move_v the_o colonel_n heart_n to_o such_o compassion_n that_o he_o carry_v himself_o very_o noble_o and_o love_o towards_o i_o &_o if_o any_o desire_v it_o he_o permit_v they_o to_o have_v access_n unto_o i_o and_o give_v i_o liberty_n to_o take_v the_o air_n which_o be_v a_o sweet_a refresh_n unto_o i_o be_v not_o thorough_o recover_v out_o of_o a_o long_a and_o dangerous_a sickness_n who_o favour_n and_o courtesy_n i_o stand_v bind_v in_o the_o bond_n of_o thankfulness_n and_o civility_n ever_o to_o predicate_v whereby_o all_o man_n may_v take_v occasion_n to_o bless_v and_o praise_n god_n name_n with_o i_o and_o i_o may_v manifest_v
popish_a cavalier_n be_v courteous_o use_v by_o a_o profess_a papist_n shall_v have_v such_o thought_n arise_v in_o your_o heart_n and_o set_v they_o forth_o in_o print_n to_o inquire_v whether_o the_o favour_n i_o receive_v from_o they_o be_v not_o obtain_v by_o my_o courtly_a comply_v with_o papist_n prefer_v they_o before_o protestant_n brother_n have_v you_o have_v such_o experience_n of_o god_n power_n and_o gracious_a goodness_n in_o give_v you_o favour_v two_o year_n together_o in_o the_o eye_n of_o some_o to_o who_o you_o be_v commit_v prisoner_n and_o do_v you_o now_o think_v it_o so_o strange_a as_o you_o can_v search_v out_o the_o reason_n of_o it_o when_o god_n have_v wrought_v the_o same_o thing_n for_o i_o one_o month_n but_o suspect_v that_o the_o favour_n i_o receive_v be_v purchase_v by_o wrong_v my_o conscience_n sure_o when_o you_o write_v these_o query_n you_o have_v forget_v the_o love_a kindness_n of_o our_o god_n show_v to_o you_o in_o your_o imprisonment_n and_o how_o notwithstanding_o for_o the_o first_o half_a year_n the_o governor_n of_o garnsey_n keep_v you_o close_a prisoner_n in_o very_o strict_a durance_n in_o some_o thing_n exceed_v the_o rigour_n of_o his_o warrant_n yet_o at_o last_o god_n move_v his_o heart_n to_o more_o humanity_n he_o afterward_o give_v you_o what_o liberty_n the_o castle_n do_v afford_v suffer_v you_o not_o to_o want_v any_o accommodation_n that_o he_o can_v possible_o help_v you_o unto_o and_o use_v you_o courteous_o all_o the_o remain_a time_n of_o your_o banishment_n have_v you_o call_v these_o thing_n to_o mind_n i_o think_v the_o remembrance_n of_o god_n mercy_n unto_o yourself_o will_v have_v full_o satisfy_v you_o in_o this_o particular_a and_o silence_v your_o carnal_a reason_n know_v god_n arm_n be_v not_o shorten_v nor_o his_o power_n lessen_v he_o be_v the_o same_o god_n yesterday_o to_o day_n and_o for_o ever_o therefore_o i_o say_v sure_o you_o have_v forget_v his_o love_a kindness_n to_o you_o or_o else_o you_o wilful_o stop_v the_o mouth_n of_o your_o experience_n and_o will_v not_o permit_v they_o to_o speak_v for_o i_o who_o you_o so_o seek_v to_o blot_v with_o false_a report_n ignominy_n and_o disgraceful_a language_n that_o even_o the_o goodness_n of_o god_n manife_a towards_o i_o you_o to_o obscure_v with_o a_o vail_n of_o evil_a surmise_n but_o that_o the_o name_n of_o god_n may_v be_v ever_o magnify_v the_o world_n undeceive_v and_o you_o receive_v a_o satisfactory_a answer_n unto_o your_o query_n know_v it_o be_v not_o any_o courtly_a compliance_n with_o papist_n which_o procure_v i_o favour_n i_o do_v no_o such_o thing_n let_v god_n be_v true_a and_o every_o man_n a_o liar_n for_o to_o he_o all_o praise_n be_v due_a who_o in_o his_o word_n have_v say_v when_o a_o man_n way_n please_v the_o lord_n he_o make_v even_o his_o enemy_n to_o be_v at_o peace_n with_o he_o prov._n 16._o 7._o this_o do_v my_o god_n when_o i_o be_v commit_v close_a prisoner_n to_o a_o papist_n make_v good_a to_o i_o his_o servant_n who_o though_o in_o much_o weakness_n do_v make_v it_o the_o ultimate_a end_n of_o all_o my_o endeavour_n to_o please_v the_o lord_n now_o this_o be_v the_o lord_n do_v and_o let_v it_o not_o seem_v marvellous_a in_o your_o eye_n that_o that_o god_n who_o call_v cyrus_n by_o name_n make_v he_o a_o friend_n to_o the_o people_n of_o god_n though_o he_o know_v not_o god_n isaiah_n 45._o 4._o who_o send_v his_o angel_n and_o shut_v the_o lion_n mouth_n that_o they_o can_v not_o hurt_v his_o servant_n daniel_n daniel_n 6._o 22._o and_o deliver_v the_o three_o child_n out_o of_o the_o fiery_a furnace_n daniel_n 3_o 26,27_o 28._o shall_v when_o he_o please_v to_o make_v his_o power_n know_v and_o prevent_v the_o evil_a intention_n of_o man_n cause_n popish_a cavalier_n to_o show_v i_o favour_n and_o to_o use_v i_o courteous_o be_v any_o thing_n too_o hard_o for_o the_o lord_n to_o do_v no_o sure_o for_o this_o and_o great_a thing_n than_o this_o my_o god_n have_v do_v for_o i_o therefore_o the_o experience_n i_o have_v have_v of_o his_o goodness_n free_a grace_n rich_a mercy_n and_o never_o fail_v love_a kindness_n i_o for_o ever_o will_v extol_v predicate_v declare_v and_o speak_v of_o that_o man_n may_v know_v it_o be_v not_o in_o vain_a to_o serve_v and_o patient_o wait_v upon_o the_o lord_n our_o god_n nor_o to_o rely_v on_o he_o in_o the_o time_n of_o their_o distress_n when_o they_o seem_v to_o be_v deprive_v of_o all_o outward_a comfort_n and_o expose_v to_o the_o great_a misery_n thus_o i_o have_v labour_v to_o satisfy_v your_o doubt_n true_o and_o faithful_o to_o answer_v your_o query_n the_o lord_n convince_v you_o of_o your_o error_n and_o of_o the_o reail_v truth_n of_o all_o i_o have_v herein_o say_v and_o forgive_v your_o unbrother_o practice_n and_o bitter_a invective_n against_o i_o one_o of_o your_o quondam_a follow_v sufferer_n now_o because_o my_o brother_n burton_n have_v so_o deep_o censure_v i_o for_o my_o postscript_n and_o because_o all_o those_o of_o his_o fraternity_n have_v upon_o all_o occasion_n so_o often_o revile_v i_o for_o it_o though_o none_o but_o himself_o ever_o endeavour_v to_o disprove_v the_o least_o title_n of_o it_o which_o they_o can_v never_o do_v i_o intend_v within_o these_o few_o day_n to_o send_v it_o out_o again_o into_o the_o world_n something_o enlarge_v touch_v their_o new_a light_n undertake_v before_o all_o man_n to_o make_v good_a whatsoever_o be_v contain_v in_o it_o and_o much_o more_o concern_v their_o practice_n imprimatur_fw-la ja._n cranford_n finis_fw-la